Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n according_a bishop_n church_n 2,848 5 4.3599 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27035 A second true defence of the meer nonconformists against the untrue accusations, reasonings, and history of Dr. Edward Stillingfleet ... clearly proving that it is (not sin but) duty 1. not wilfully to commit the many sins of conformity, 2. not sacrilegiously to forsake the preaching of the Gospel, 3. not to cease publick worshipping of God, 4. to use needful pastoral helps for salvation ... / written by Richard Baxter ... ; with some notes on Mr. Joseph Glanviles Zealous and impartial Protestant, and Dr. L. Moulins character. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1681 (1681) Wing B1405; ESTC R5124 188,187 234

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

one_o have_v be_v the_o generation_n of_o another_o how_o many_o church_n of_o england_n have_v you_o have_v 4._o the_o whole_a nation_n do_v not_o consent_v by_o parliament_n when_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o vote_v down_o the_o bishop_n and_o liturgy_n be_v there_o then_o no_o national_a church_n 5._o how_o shall_v we_o prove_v that_o the_o whole_a or_o half_o the_o nation_n ever_o mean_v to_o put_v their_o consent_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o parliament_n to_o make_v a_o new_a church_n of_o england_n and_o to_o alter_v it_o 6._o what_o man_n make_v they_o may_v destroy_v may_v not_o the_o nation_n withdraw_v such_o consent_n and_o the_o parliament_n unmake_v their_o creature_n §_o 7._o next_o p._n 300_o he_o say_v the_o representative_a church_n of_o england_n i●_n the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n of_o this_o church_n meeting_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o consult_v and_o advise_v about_o 〈◊〉_d of_o religion_n the_o consent_n of_o 〈◊〉_d convocation_n of_o ca●●erbury_n and_o york_n province_n ●●_o the_o representative_a national_a church_n of_o england_n answ_n 1._o so_o here_o we_o have_v a_o diffusive_a church_n and_o its_o representative_a but_o no_o government_n of_o either_o as_o a_o church_n mention_v but_o the_o civil_a 2._o and_o they_o can_v be_v no_o governor_n mere_o as_o represent_v those_o that_o be_v no_o governor_n themselves_o not_o as_o the_o people_n representative_n fo●_n they_o be_v no_o church_n governor_n whatever_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v like_o a_o brownist_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n as_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n not_o as_o the_o presbyter_n representative_n for_o 1._o they_o be_v deny_v episcopal_a power_n 2._o and_o they_o be_v governor_n at_o most_o but_o of_o their_o particular_a church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o whole_a 3._o not_o as_o the_o bishop_n representative_n for_o 1._o they_o be_v there_o themselves_o 2._o and_o they_o be_v no_o common_a governor_n of_o the_o whole_a as_o such_o 3._o if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o two_o convocation_n when_o they_o consent_v become_v the_o one_o common_a constitutive_a govern_v power_n of_o the_o national_a church_n this_o be_v intelligible_a but_o 1._o he_o after_o deny_v any_o such_o 2._o and_o then_o their_o dissent_n will_v dissolve_v the_o church_n and_o one_o convocation_n not_o oblige_v it_o with_o much_o more_o such_o §_o 8._o but_o yet_o he_o perceive_v he_o have_v not_o answer_v i_o and_o therefore_o come_v to_o it_o page_z 300_o say_v it_o be_v a_o false_a supposition_n that_o wherever_o there_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o a_o church_n there_o must_v be_v a_o constitutive_a regent_n part_n a_o stand_a govern_v power_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o answ_n a_o true_a notion_n belong_v to_o equivocal_n the_o true_a notion_n and_o the_o proper_a political_a notion_n be_v word_n of_o various_a signification_n i_o have_v grant_v you_o that_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o a_o church_n belong_v to_o a_o shipfull_a a_o prison_n full_a a_o housefull_a of_o christian_n as_o such_o and_o to_o our_o parliament_n and_o to_o the_o common-council_n of_o the_o city_n but_o not_o the_o notion_n now_o in_o question_n 2._o be_v not_o government_n essential_a to_o a_o govern_v church_n fix_a government_n to_o a_o fix_a church_n and_o transient_a temporary_a government_n to_o a_o answerable_a church_n deny_v this_o and_o few_o will_v follow_v you_o §_o 9_o he_o add_v which_o i_o will_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a from_o mr._n b._n himself_o he_o assert_n that_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_n visible_a church_n and_o that_o all_o particular_a church_n head_v by_o their_o particular_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n be_v part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o a_o troop_n be_v of_o a_o army_n and_o a_o city_n of_o a_o kingdom_n then_o it_o will_v unavoidable_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o catholic_n visible_a head_n to_o a_o catholic_n visible_a church_n and_o so_o mr._n b_n constitutive_a regent_n part_n of_o a_o church_n have_v do_v the_o pope_n a_o wonderful_a kindness_n but_o there_o be_v some_o man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o do_v not_o attend_v the_o advantage_n they_o give_v to_o popery_n so_o they_o may_v but_o vent_v their_o spleen_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o do_v not_o mr._n b._n say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v head_v by_o christ_n i_o grant_v he_o do_v but_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o which_o particular_a church_n be_v part_n and_o they_o be_v visible_a part_n require_v a_o visible_a constitutive_a regent_n head_n therefore_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n must_v have_v likewise_o a_o constitutive_a visible_a regent_n part_n this_o be_v to_o make_v a_o key_n for_o catholic_n answ_n i_o be_o glad_a he_o speak_v so_o intelligible_o in_o deny_v a_o constitutive_a regent_n part_n though_o sorry_a that_o he_o speak_v so_o ill_o 1._o when_o i_o have_v write_v against_o johnson_n alius_fw-la terrae_fw-la the_o papist_n two_o book_n on_o this_o subject_n especial_o the_o late_a full_o prove_v the_o catholic_n church_n head_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v that_o visible_a church_n catholic_n of_o which_o all_o particular_n be_v member_n can_v the_o reader_n think_v i_o shall_v write_v it_o over_o again_o because_o this_o doctor_n will_v talk_v over_o a_o little_a of_o the_o same_o with_o that_o priest_n and_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o my_o proof_n or_o answer_n 2._o do_v he_o believe_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o visible_a part_n of_o god_n universal_a kingdom_n and_o yet_o god_n invisible_a 3._o dare_v he_o say_v that_o all_o true_a church_n be_v not_o real_a part_n of_o christ_n universal_a church_n as_o a_o govern_v body_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o they_o visible_a be_v it_o necessary_a then_o that_o the_o universal_a head_n must_v be_v visible_a if_o the_o subordinate_a be_v so_o 4._o do_v he_o not_o perceive_v that_o he_o turn_v the_o controversy_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o regent_n head_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o visibility_n as_o if_o our_o question_n have_v not_o be_v which_o be_v the_o regent_n part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v visible_a be_v this_o edify_n 5._o all_o christian_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v visible_a 1._o in_o its_o part_n and_o member_n on_o earth_n and_o their_o profession_n 2._o in_o that_o christ_n the_o head_n be_v visible_a on_o earth_n 3._o and_o have_v leave_v visible_a universal_a law_n 4._o and_o have_v a_o body_n visible_a in_o heaven_n as_o the_o king_n be_v to_o his_o courtier_n but_o not_o to_o most_o of_o his_o subject_n 5._o and_o will_v short_o visible_o judge_v all_o the_o world_n thus_o far_o and_o no_o further_o save_v as_o see_v extraordinary_o to_o paul_n stephen_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o universal_a head_n visible_a and_o be_v we_o not_o agree_v that_o this_o be_v a_o real_a and_o most_o excellent_a political_a church_n and_o that_o all_o other_o visible_a church_n be_v part_n of_o it_o something_o beside_o spleen_n make_v some_o man_n talk_v dangerous_o §_o 10._o but_o real_o do_v he_o think_v that_o this_o do_v unavoidable_o set_v up_o the_o pope_n why_o first_o be_v there_o a_o word_n of_o this_o that_o a_o sober_a christian_a dare_v deny_v or_o that_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v not_o common_o consent_v to_o and_o do_v the_o certain_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o church_n set_v up_o the_o pope_n will_v he_o turn_v papist_n if_o this_o be_v prove_v and_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o deceive_v be_v this_o our_o champion_n against_o popery_n now_o i_o think_v no_o man_n but_o mr._n cheny_n and_o some_o odd_a papist_n have_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n but_o to_o mr._n cheny_n and_o against_o johnson_n i_o have_v confute_v it_o and_o therefore_o thither_o refer_v the_o reader_n far_o be_v it_o from_o i_o to_o resist_v popery_n by_o deny_v 1._o that_o christ_n church_n thus_o far_o visible_a be_v one_o political_a body_n head_v by_o himself_o 2._o or_o that_o all_o true_a visible_a church_n be_v part_n of_o it_o 3._o or_o that_o every_o political_a govern_v body_n be_v constitute_v of_o the_o regent_n and_o subdite_fw-la part_n christian_n will_v reject_v i_o for_o the_o former_a and_o politician_n deride_v i_o if_o i_o hold_v the_o last_o §_o 11._o he_o proceed_v 2._o the_o plain_a resolution_n be_v that_o we_o deny_v any_o necessity_n of_o any_o such_o regent_n constitutive_a part_n or_o one_o formal_a ecclesiastical_a head_n as_o essential_a to_o a_o national_a church_n for_o a_o national_a consent_n be_v as_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o national_a church_n as_o a_o universal_a consent_n to_o make_v a_o catholic_n answ_n no_o consent_n make_v a_o catholic_n church_n but_o consent_v to_o one_o supreme_a head_n christ_n but_o i_o
clergy_n represent_v the_o laity_n in_o the_o convocation_n 21._o by_o your_o rule_n if_o divers_a party_n of_o christian_n agree_v to_o set_v up_o divers_a form_n of_o church-government_n with_o mutual_a forbearance_n they_o will_v be_v one_o national_a church_n and_o so_o will_v episcopal_n presbyterian_o and_o independent_n if_o the_o law_n allow_v they_o all_o 22._o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o day_n of_o h._n 8._o ed._n 6._o q._n marry_o q._n eliz._n etc._n etc._n 23._o who_o make_v national_a church_n in_o absolute_a hereditary_a monarchy_n where_o be_v no_o parliament_n to_o signify_v popular_a consent_n 24._o if_o every_o law_n of_o order_n be_v essential_a to_o your_o church_n few_o conformist_n be_v of_o it_o if_o only_o the_o true_a essential_o why_o be_v not_o we_o also_o of_o it_o 25._o how_o ill_o agree_v you_o with_o mr._n cheny_n who_o make_v it_o atheism_n infidelity_n blasphemy_n impiety_n to_o assert_v church-making_a consent_n or_o confederacy_n beside_o baptism_n 26._o but_o the_o best_a be_v you_o leave_v we_o in_o hope_n of_o reformation_n for_o if_o parliament_n will_v but_o consent_v for_o we_o to_o take_v down_o diocesanes_n lower_v and_o to_o reform_v parish-church_n and_o alter_v liturgy_n etc._n etc._n we_o be_v the_o national_a church_n still_o and_o one_o prevail_a vote_n may_v prove_v we_o all_o consenter_n and_o make_v the_o church_n quite_o another_o thing_n §_o 14._o yet_o he_o say_v page_z 299._o by_o this_o description_n any_o one_o may_v see_v how_o easy_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o papist_n on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o dissenter_n on_o the_o other_o answ_n i_o be_o one_o and_o i_o can_v see_v it_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o see_v how_o to_o know_v the_o church_n itself_o nor_o who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o it_o nor_o how_o any_o man_n can_v know_v it_o but_o he_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o make_v it_o a_o church_n invisible_a but_o i_o see_v the_o dissenter_n must_v be_v none_o of_o it_o 1._o how_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n know_v from_o papist_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o h._n 8._o or_o in_o the_o middle_n or_o in_o the_o end_n or_o how_o know_v when_o it_o begin_v how_o be_v it_o know_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n when_o the_o papist_n come_v to_o church_n or_o now_o as_o to_o church-papists_a how_o shall_v we_o know_v to_o which_o church_n the_o late_a bishop_n bramhall_n and_o other_o doctor_n belong_v who_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n govern_n we_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n &_o principium_fw-la unitatatis_fw-la universalis_fw-la and_o all_o go_v for_o schismatic_n that_o deny_v it_o some_o call_v this_o the_o new-church_n of_o england_n differ_v from_o the_o old_a one_o which_o be_v before_o bishop_n laud._n 2._o how_o shall_v one_o know_v how_o far_o consent_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o member_n and_o dissent_n unchurch_v he_o late_o a_o doctor_n be_v accuse_v for_o say_v he_o scruple_v to_o call_v the_o king_n according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n our_o most_o religious_a king_n mr._n jowl_n of_o sarral_n be_v suspend_v for_o not_o often_o wear_v the_o surplice_n and_o deny_v to_o pray_v in_o the_o litany_n for_o our_o most_o gracious_a queen_n katherine_n and_o james_z duke_n of_o york_n but_o these_o be_v small_a dissent_n the_o sense_n be_v the_o church_n law_n and_o doctrine_n and_o not_o the_o sound_n of_o word_n in_o various_a sense_n i_o have_v oft_o show_v in_o how_o many_o contrary_a sense_n the_o conformist_n take_v the_o 39_o article_n the_o liturgy_n the_o word_n of_o subscription_n and_o declaration_n and_o the_o oath_n impose_v how_o shall_v one_o know_v among_o all_o these_o who_o be_v or_o be_v not_o of_o your_o church_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v agree_v in_o the_o faith_n government_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v establish_v by_o law_n and_o then_o speak_v so_o hot_o against_o the_o need_n and_o be_v of_o any_o common_a government_n save_o the_o civil_a at_o all_o establish_v over_o the_o church_n as_o a._n national_a body_n and_o never_o distinguish_v any_o necessary_a part_n of_o faith_n government_n and_o worship_n from_o the_o rest_n nor_o tell_v we_o how_o to_o know_v they_o and_o when_o conformist_n dissent_v in_o so_o many_o thing_n some_o from_o lay_v chancellor_n government_n by_o the_o key_n some_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n and_o the_o noncon●o●●●ists_n say_v they_o consent_v to_o all_o that_o scripture_n require_v and_o the_o mere_a circumstantial_o determine_v by_o law_n how_o shall_v you_o be_v know_v either_o it_o be_v in_o the_o essential_o only_o or_o the_o integral_n also_o or_o also_o in_o all_o the_o law_n de_fw-fr accedentibus_fw-la that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o agreement_n be_v make_v that_o one_o church_n 1._o if_o it_o be_v only_o in_o essential_o be_v there_o either_o confession_n rubric_n canon_n or_o any_o writer_n that_o have_v tell_v we_o which_o be_v those_o and_o all_o those_o and_o only_o those_o essential_o i_o never_o meet_v with_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o know_v they_o and_o therefore_o never_o meet_v with_o man_n that_o can_v thus_o tell_v whether_o he_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o not_o nor_o that_o can_v tell_v of_o other_o and_o who_o be_v not_o 2._o to_o say_v it_o must_v be_v consent_n also_o in_o the_o integral_n that_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la be_v a_o contradiction_n and_o be_v to_o make_v integral_n essential_o to_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v consent_n in_o all_o law_n of_o accident_n also_o be_v to_o make_v that_o a_o essential_a part_n which_o be_v no_o part_n our_o loose_a confound_a disputer_n when_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o truth_n in_o such_o contradiction_n may_v say_v as_o mr._n dodwell_n do_v to_o i_o that_o i_o cavil_v but_o will_v that_o answer_n help_v down_o all_o absurdity_n with_o reasonable_a man_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o as_o the_o papist_n doctrine_n of_o define_v church-member_n and_o christian_n by_o no_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o by_o probable_a proposal_n of_o more_o or_o less_o do_v make_v their_o church_n invisible_a so_o do_v this_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o doctor_n stillingfleet_n make_v they_o and_o leave_v we_o uncertain_a who_o be_v of_o it_o it_o make_v i_o think_v what_o i_o hear_v oliver_n the_o usurper_n say_v to_o a_o bishop_n that_o now_o be_v as_o i_o be_o credible_o tell_v doctor_n how_o know_v you_o that_o you_o be_v a_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n who_o answer_v he_o on_o mr._n dodwell_n principle_n because_o i_o have_v receive_v ordination_n by_o uninterrupted_a successive_a conveyance_n from_o true_a bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o be_v you_o sure_o they_o be_v all_o true_a bishop_n and_o the_o succession_n uninterrupted_a doctor_n will_v you_o take_v your_o oath_n that_o you_o be_v thus_o a_o true_a minister_n at_o which_o when_o he_o stick_v come_v come_v doctor_z say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o sure_a and_o a_o near_a way_n certain_a i_o be_o that_o if_o agreement_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n or_o in_o all_o form_n and_o ceremony_n be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n abundance_n that_o subscribe_v be_v none_o that_o now_o go_v for_o such_o but_o if_o not_o i_o pray_v tell_v we_o why_o such_o as_o i_o also_o be_v not_o member_n of_o your_o church_n do_v i_o more_o differ_v from_o you_o than_o doctor_n heylin_n mr._n thorndike_n mr._n dodwell_n and_o in_o a_o word_n than_o the_o party_n which_o adhere_v to_o archbishop_n la●d_v differ_v from_o the_o party_n which_o adhere_v to_o bishop_n abbot_n whitgift_n and_o the_o parliament_n of_o those_o and_o aftertime_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o such_o a_o one_o be_v constitute_v by_o no_o supreme_a church-government_n we_o be_v all_o of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o we_o consent_v to_o the_o association_n and_o none_o as_o it_o be_v one_o political_a body_n and_o what_o then_o become_v of_o its_o law_n and_o all_o the_o treatise_n of_o its_o church-policy_n §_o 15._o but_o yet_o the_o doctor_n stop_v not_o here_o i_o unavoidable_o introduce_v popery_n if_o i_o make_v a_o constitutive_a regent_n church_n power_n necessary_a to_o a_o church_n for_o then_o the_o universal_a church_n must_v have_v such_o answ_n 1._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o a_o equivocal_a ungoverned_a church_n such_o as_o our_o worcestershire_n association_n make_v but_o to_o a_o political_a govern_v church_n it_o be_v 2._o mark_v here_o all_o you_o that_o go_v the_o political_a church_n way_n that_o your_o doctor_n accuse_v you_o more_o than_o the_o nonconformist_n even_o of_o certain_a open_v the_o door_n to_o popery_n what_o if_o i_o have_v say_v so_o by_o you_o be_v it_o such_o
will_v have_v all_o walk_n by_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o but_o instead_o of_o that_o with_o unusual_a gentleness_n tell_v i_o he_o will_v not_o differ_v about_o it_o if_o i_o do_v but_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n that_o bind_v we_o all_o to_o do_v all_o that_o lawful_o we_o can_v for_o peace_n which_o i_o cheerful_o grant_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o peace_n and_o concord_n to_o forbear_v silence_v we_o imprison_v we_o accuse_v we_o as_o odious_a for_o not_o wilful_a sin_v and_o urge_v magistrate_n to_o execute_v the_o law_n against_o we_o and_o make_v we_o seem_v schismatic_n for_o not_o forbear_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o which_o we_o be_v vow_v and_o consecrate_v by_o ordination_n i_o know_v not_o lawful_a from_o unlawful_a i_o can_v yet_o get_v he_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o will_v have_v the_o many_o score_n thousand_o do_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n that_o have_v no_o room_n in_o the_o parish-church_n with_o many_o such_o which_o our_o case_n be_v concern_v in_o §_o 14._o i_o think_v his_o book_n have_v be_v a_o answer_n to_o i_o and_o other_o man_n preface_n but_o i_o find_v that_o i_o be_v mistake_v indeed_o he_o name_v five_o book_n write_v against_o his_o accusation_n what_o he_o say_v to_o dr._n owen_n and_o mr._n alsop_n i_o leave_v to_o themselves_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o country_n gentleman_n case_n in_o sense_n be_v this_o whether_o all_o they_o that_o think_v parish_n communion_n under_o the_o present_a imposition_n to_o be_v sin_n be_v bind_v till_o they_o can_v change_v their_o judgement_n to_o forbear_v all_o church-worship_n and_o live_v like_o atheist_n and_o so_o be_v damn_v and_o who_o can_v find_v any_o answer_n to_o this_o mr._n barret_n query_n out_o of_o his_o book_n he_o say_v next_o nothing_o to_o but_o a_o dark_a retract_v his_o irenicon_n and_o far_o be_v it_o from_o i_o to_o blame_v he_o for_o grow_v wise_a but_o why_o take_v he_o no_o notice_n of_o his_o own_o word_n cite_v in_o the_o epistle_n out_o of_o his_o late_a book_n against_o idolatry_n threaten_v we_o all_o with_o no_o less_o than_o damnation_n if_o i_o prefer_v not_o the_o pure_a church_n and_o as_o to_o my_o defence_n his_o book_n be_v nothing_o like_o a_o answer_n unless_o his_o name_v i_o and_o cite_v out_o of_o that_o and_o other_o book_n a_o few_o break_a scrap_n which_o he_o think_v he_o can_v make_v some_o advantage_n of_o may_v be_v call_v a_o answer_n §_o 15._o i_o confess_v he_o have_v make_v some_o attempt_n to_o tell_v i_o what_o the_o national_a church_n of_o england_n be_v but_o so_o independent_o as_o i_o doubt_v his_o party_n will_v disow_v it_o with_o great_a offence_n in_o short_a he_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o usual_a political_a sense_n have_v any_o constitutive_a ecclesiastical_a supreme_a power_n monarchical_a or_o aristocratical_a or_o democratical_a but_o it_o be_v only_o the_o many_o church_n in_o england_n associate_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n in_o parliament_n etc._n etc._n remember_v that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v so_o far_o agree_v as_o i_o be_v write_v this_o i_o see_v a_o book_n against_o he_o of_o a_o friend_n too_o much_o for_o i_o and_o somewhat_o free_o handle_v the_o dr._n which_o in_o this_o point_n will_v help_v they_o by_o say_v that_o the_o convocation_n have_v the_o legislative_a church-power_n may_v be_v the_o constitutive_a regent_n part_n but_o he_o confess_v to_o i_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o what_o be_v but_o what_o he_o count_v shall_v be_v or_o wish_v for_o the_o dr._n himself_o have_v before_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o convocation_n of_o canterbury_n and_o york_n be_v two_o and_o not_o unite_v to_o make_v one_o national_a supreme_a power_n so_o that_o this_o prove_v no_o one_o political_a church_n of_o england_n at_o all_o but_o only_o 2_o provincial_a church_n in_o england_n §_o 16._o the_o dr._n have_v so_o judicious_o and_o honest_o plead_v our_o cause_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o a._n bishop_n laud_n and_o his_o book_n against_o idolatry_n that_o i_o have_v make_v his_o word_n the_o first_o chap._n of_o this_o book_n which_o if_o he_o candid_o stand_v to_o i_o see_v not_o but_o our_o principle_n be_v the_o same_o §_o 17._o his_o book_n be_v make_v up_o of_o 3_o part_n i._o untrue_a accusation_n ii_o untrue_a historical_a citation_n abundance_n iii_o fallacious_a reason_n will_v you_o have_v a_o undeniable_a confutation_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la in_o few_o word_n i._o as_o to_o his_o principle_n he_o say_v himself_o as_o aforesaid_a of_o idolat_a p._n 7._o we_o be_v sure_a that_o wilful_a ignorance_n or_o choose_v a_o worse_a church_n before_o a_o better_a be_v a_o damnable_a sin_n ii_o as_o to_o his_o history_n of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n read_v a._n bishop_n bancroft_n dangerous_a position_n and_o heylins_n history_n of_o presbytery_n charge_v they_o odious_o with_o the_o clean_a contrary_n and_o the_o canon_n make_v against_o they_o on_o that_o supposition_n iii_o as_o to_o his_o history_n and_o doctrine_n against_o the_o election_n of_o bp_o s_o which_o i_o plead_v as_o i_o have_v full_o prove_v his_o abuse_n of_o history_n in_o it_o i_o repeat_v mr._n thorndikes_n word_n forbear_v of_o penalty_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o talk_v of_o reformation_n of_o the_o churchtoregular_a government_n without_o restore_v the_o liberty_n of_o choose_v bishop_n and_o privilege_v of_o enjoy_v they_o to_o the_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n in_o the_o make_n of_o those_o of_o who_o they_o consist_v and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v that_o i_o need_v make_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o the_o neglect_n of_o episcopacy_n than_o the_o neglect_n of_o it_o o_o pray_v hard_o to_o god_n to_o provide_v great_a store_n of_o skilful_a holy_a and_o peaceable_a labourer_n for_o his_o harvest_n that_o by_o the_o sound_a belief_n of_o a_o better_a world_n have_v overcome_v the_o delude_a love_n of_o the_o honour_n prosperity_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o whole_o live_v to_o god_n and_o heaven_n postscript_n dr_n edward_n stillingfleet_n irenic_n p._n 114._o say_v the_o episcopal_a man_n will_v hardly_o find_v any_o evidence_n in_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o church_n consist_v of_o many_o fix_a congregation_n for_o worship_n under_o the_o charge_n of_o one_o pastor_n nor_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n without_o the_o precede_a election_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o at_o least_o consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o neither_o in_o scripture_n nor_o antiquity_n the_o least_o foot-step_n of_o the_o delegation_n of_o church-power_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o matter_n all_o of_o they_o at_o last_o make_v use_n of_o those_o thing_n in_o church-government_n which_o have_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o the_o principle_n of_o humane_a prudence_n guide_v by_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v well_o if_o that_o be_v observe_v still_o p._n 370._o sure_o then_o their_o diocese_n we_o re_fw-mi not_o very_o large_a if_o all_o the_o several_a parish_n can_v communicate_v on_o the_o same_o day_n with_o what_o be_v send_v from_o the_o cathedral_n church_n p._n 361._o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o philippi_n be_v not_o the_o metropolis_n of_o macedonia_n and_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n there_o mention_v can_v not_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o several_a city_n under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o philippi_n but_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o bishop_n resident_a in_o that_o city_n p._n 157._o there_o must_v be_v a_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n over_o a_o nation_n as_o a_o church_n as_o well_o as_o of_o civil_a government_n over_o it_o as_o a_o society_n govern_v by_o the_o same_o law_n for_o every_o society_n must_v have_v its_o government_n belong_v to_o it_o as_o such_o a_o society_n and_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o make_v government_n necessary_a in_o any_o particular_a congregation_n will_v make_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o the_o particular_a congregation_n join_v together_o in_o one_o visible_a society_n as_o a_o particular_a national_a church_n for_o the_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o that_o church_n ought_v much_o more_o to_o be_v look_v after_o than_o of_o any_o one_o congregation_n p._n 131._o the_o church_n power_n as_o to_o divine_a law_n be_v only_a directive_n and_o declarative_n but_o as_o confirm_v by_o a_o civil_a sanction_n be_v juridical_a and_o obligatory_a p._n 113._o where_o any_o church_n be_v guilty_a of_o corruption_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o practice_n which_o it_o avow_v and_o profess_v and_o require_v the_o own_v they_o as_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o she_o there_o a_o noncommunion_n with_o that_o church_n be_v necessary_a and_o a_o
mind_n by_o cite_v four_o of_o their_o book_n against_o brownist_n and_o be_v four_o or_o forty_o time_n four_o all_o but_o mr._n rathband_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o nonconformist_n do_v he_o believe_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o all_o or_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n write_v or_o subscribe_v it_o one_o of_o the_o name_n to_o it_o be_v mr._n simeon_n ash_n my_o intimate_a dear_a friend_n who_o judgement_n in_o these_o matter_n be_v the_o same_o with_o i_o who_o i_o be_v with_o even_o in_o his_o sickness_n almost_o to_o the_o last_o hour_n of_o his_o life_n and_o be_v bury_v aug._n 23._o 1662._o the_o day_n before_o the_o law_n have_v else_o silence_v he_o and_o he_o be_v to_o i_o a_o better_a expositor_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n than_o the_o dr._n can_v be_v he_o be_v so_o much_o for_o go_v on_o to_o preach_v that_o his_o motto_n in_o his_o funeral_n ring_n be_v i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n i_o yet_o keep_v my_o ring_n and_o can_v show_v it_o you_o and_o as_o to_o old_a mr._n langley_n another_o of_o they_o i_o hear_v he_o myself_o preach_v in_o albriton_n church_n in_o shropshire_n a_o thanksgiving_n sermon_n for_o the_o hope_n of_o deliverance_n from_o the_o silence_v bishop_n when_o the_o law_n forbid_v he_o and_o for_o old_a mr._n slater_n i_o hear_v he_o preach_v at_o trinity_n church_n in_o coventry_n when_o the_o law_n forbid_v he_o and_o do_v they_o not_o understand_v their_o own_o write_n better_a than_o the_o dr._n do_v sect._n 23._o and_o i_o will_v i_o know_v how_o to_o prevail_v with_o he_o to_o tell_v i_o whether_o the_o law_n and_o canon_n do_v not_o forbid_v all_o the_o minister_n in_o england_n to_o worship_n god_n according_a to_o the_o directory_n and_o neglect_v the_o common_a prayer_n book_n which_o yet_o almost_o all_o do_v for_o many_o year_n in_o the_o time_n of_o usurpation_n and_o yet_o of_o nine_o thousand_o or_o more_o of_o these_o seven_o thousand_o since_o conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o they_o say_v that_o this_o dr._n be_v one_o of_o they_o if_o mere_a disobedience_n then_o be_v the_o sin_n all_o these_o live_v so_o long_o in_o sin_n and_o he_o with_o other_o sect._n 24._o but_o all_o that_o can_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o four_o book_n ●●●ed_v and_o such_o other_o be_v but_o this_o which_o be_v our_o judgement_n 1._o that_o church_n and_o pastor_n be_v under_o the_o king_n government_n as_o well_o as_o other_o subject_n 2._o that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o punish_v they_o for_o evil_a do_v and_o encourage_v they_o in_o do_v well_o 3._o that_o as_o to_o this_o his_o own_o execution_n he_o be_v the_o public_a judge_n whether_o they_o do_v well_o or_o ill_o 4._o that_o if_o he_o just_o forbid_v any_o to_o preach_v or_o assemble_v he_o must_v be_v obey_v 5._o and_o if_o he_o mistake_v in_o particular_a case_n not_o destroy_v the_o end_n of_o his_o government_n the_o common_a good_a he_o must_v not_o be_v resist_v nor_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n disobey_v as_o tend_v more_o to_o the_o common_a hurt_n than_o his_o mistake_n do_v nor_o disable_v to_o govern_v by_o their_o dishonour_v he_o much_o less_o by_o rebellion_n or_o confusion_n 6._o nor_o be_v man_n bind_v to_o cast_v away_o their_o great_a advantage_n for_o god_n service_n which_o they_o then_o have_v on_o pretence_n of_o do_v better_a when_o by_o accident_n it_o will_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a nor_o as_o bradshaw_n say_v to_o run_v on_o the_o sword_n or_o oppose_v sword_n to_o sword_n or_o raise_v sedition_n and_o ruin_v themselves_o in_o vain_a their_o advantage_n be_v many_o 1._o lawful_a communion_n in_o the_o parish_n church_n 2._o most_o of_o they_o either_o constant_o or_o by_o sit_v have_v public_a church_n or_o chapel_n to_o preach_v in_o and_o be_v still_o in_o hope_n 3._o the_o magistrate_n protect_v they_o and_o the_o reformation_n 4._o they_o hope_v for_o a_o progress_n of_o it_o whereas_o have_v they_o open_o do_v as_o the_o brownist_n they_o have_v endanger_v the_o reformation_n by_o the_o exasperation_n and_o ruin_v themselves_o and_o lose_v most_o of_o their_o labour_n so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o preach_v in_o that_o imprudent_a manner_n which_o be_v like_a to_o do_v more_o harm_n than_o good_a they_o take_v to_o be_v a_o double_a sin_n as_o hurtful_a and_o as_o disobedience_n for_o obedience_n be_v due_a in_o such_o a_o case_n but_o in_o case_n the_o manner_n and_o circumstance_n be_v such_o as_o that_o these_o evil_n be_v not_o consequent_a but_o more_o good_a than_o hurt_v to_o be_v expect_v they_o think_v the_o bare_a breach_n of_o the_o law_n no_o sin_n sect._n 25._o which_o i_o yet_o further_o prove_v 1._o because_o it_o be_v agree_v by_o all_o that_o govern_v order_n be_v a_o medium_n for_o the_o thing_n order_v and_o never_o oblige_v when_o it_o overthrow_v the_o end_n power_n be_v give_v to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n none_o have_v power_n to_o forbid_v the_o necessary_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o probable_o to_o damn_v soul_n 2._o because_o else_o the_o nonconformist_n shall_v be_v more_o against_o preach_v when_o forbid_v than_o the_o conformist_n who_o say_v as_o bishop_n bilson_n we_o must_v go_v on_o with_o our_o work_n &_o suffer_v and_o as_o bishop_n andrews_n torture_n torti_n cohibeat_fw-la regem_fw-la diaconus_fw-la etc._n etc._n 3._o yea_o the_o papist_n who_o on_o pretence_n of_o obedience_n be_v tyrannical_a yet_o most_o agree_n as_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v that_o humane_a law_n bind_v not_o beyond_o the_o case_n of_o scandal_n when_o they_o be_v against_o the_o common_a good_a and_o a_o toletane_a council_n decree_v that_o their_o constitution_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v to_o bind_v ad_fw-la p●c●atum_fw-la to_o hazard_v soul_n but_o only_a ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la 4._o as_o i_o have_v say_v their_o own_o practice_n full_o expound_v their_o word_n who_o constant_o break_v the_o law_n and_o canon_n in_o preach_v in_o house_n and_o in_o chapel_n without_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o liturgy_n or_o a_o part_n of_o it_o so_o do_v mr._n ball_n at_o whitemore_n mr._n hind_n at_o banbury_n mr._n geree_n and_o mr._n fox_n at_o tewksbury_n john_n rogers_n at_o dedham_n mr._n taylor_n mr._n harvy_n mr._n bourne_n at_o manchester_n mr._n gee_o mr._n johnson_n mr._n hancock_n mr._n barlow_n mr._n broxholme_n mr._n cooper_n and_o abundance_n more_o beside_o those_o mention_v before_o and_o now_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o dr.'s_n further_a thought_n whether_o he_o speak_v true_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o the_o nonconformist_n and_o have_v prove_v what_o he_o undertake_v to_o abuse_v the_o magistrate_n or_o do_v his_o part_n for_o public_a reformation_n they_o be_v against_o and_o so_o be_v we_o sect._n 26._o as_o to_o his_o question_n be_v there_o less_o necessity_n then_o or_o now_o i_o answer_v 1._o there_o be_v then_o more_o necessity_n as_o there_o be_v of_o you_o or_o i_o in_o america_n where_o we_o can_v preach_v the_o people_n late_o papist_n desire_v not_o their_o help_n nor_o scruple_v hear_v other_o as_o many_o thousand_o do_v now_o 2._o there_o be_v necessity_n then_o and_o so_o there_o be_v now_o but_o opportunity_n must_v join_v with_o necessity_n to_o oblige_v which_o they_o have_v more_o than_o we_o by_o connivance_n in_o chapel_n where_o be_v necessity_n and_o they_o have_v less_o than_o we_o in_o other_o place_n sect._n 27._o as_o to_o the_o answer_n of_o mr._n sprint_v on_o my_o knowledge_n the_o usual_a answer_n be_v that_o evil_n must_v not_o be_v do_v that_o we_o may_v have_v leave_n to_o do_v good_a and_o that_o if_o other_o hinder_v i_o because_o i_o will_v not_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o my_o omission_n of_o any_o duty_n yet_o the_o disparity_n of_o the_o apostle_n case_n and_o we_o may_v be_v mention_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o obligation_n positive_a precept_n bind_v not_o ad_fw-la semper_fw-la but_o negative_n do_v and_o it_o be_v too_o gross_a a_o shift_n to_o turn_v a_o negative_a to_o a_o positive_a and_o then_o pretend_v that_o the_o comparison_n be_v between_o two_o duty_n preach_v be_v a_o duty_n when_o we_o can_v do_v it_o but_o not_o when_o we_o can_v do_v it_o unless_o we_o will_v swear_v subscribe_v profess_v or_o practice_v a_o forbid_a thing_n sect._n 28._o i_o conjecture_v that_o to_o what_o i_o have_v prove_v of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o their_o preach_n in_o peculiar_a place_n chapel_n or_o church_n though_o in_o a_o manner_n against_o law_n and_o canon_n be_v but_o a_o partial_a join_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o not_o a_o separation_n and_o the_o connivance_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o toleration_n answ_n 1._o and_o
be_v in_o all_o place_n of_o this_o realm_n almost_o neglect_v the_o offender_n either_o nothing_o or_o little_o rebuke_v and_o since_o the_o transgressor_n have_v no_o colour_n of_o conscience_n it_o be_v sin_n and_o shame_n to_o proceed_v against_o we_o first_o have_v also_o reasonable_a defence_n of_o our_o do_n charity_n my_o lord_n will_v first_o have_v teach_v we_o equity_n will_v first_o have_v spare_v we_o brotherliness_n will_v have_v warn_v we_o pity_n will_v have_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o have_v be_v find_v trespasser_n god_n be_v my_o witness_n who_o be_v the_o beholder_n of_o all_o faith_n i_o think_v of_o your_o lordship_n honourable_o esteem_v you_o as_o brethren_n reverence_v you_o as_o lord_n and_o master_n of_o the_o congregation_n alas_o why_o have_v not_o you_o some_o good_a opinion_n of_o we_o why_o do_v you_o trust_v know_v adversary_n and_o mistrust_v your_o brethren_n we_o confess_v one_o faith_n of_o jesus_n we_o preach_v one_o doctrine_n we_o acknowledge_v one_o ruler_n upon_o earth_n in_o all_o thing_n save_v in_o this_o we_o be_v of_o your_o judgement_n shall_v we_o be_v use_v thus_o for_o a_o surplice_n shall_v brethren_n persecute_v brethren_n for_o a_o fork_a cap_n devise_v singularity_n of_o he_o that_o be_v our_o enemy_n now_o shall_v we_o fight_v for_o the_o pope_n coat_n his_o head_n and_o body_n be_v banish_v shall_v the_o controversy_n so_o fall_v out_o in_o conclusion_n that_o for_o lack_v of_o necessary_a furniture_n as_o it_o be_v esteem_v labourer_n shall_v lack_v wage_n church_n preach_v shall_v we_o not_o teach_v shall_v we_o not_o exercise_v our_o talent_n as_o god_n have_v command_v we_o because_o we_o will_v not_o wear_v that_o which_o our_o enemy_n have_v desire_v and_o that_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o friend_n oh_o that_o ever_o i_o see_v this_o day_n that_o our_o adversary_n shall_v laugh_v to_o see_v brethren_n fall_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n oh_o that_o ephraim_n shall_v thus_o eat_v up_o manasses_n manasses_n ephraim_n my_o lord_n before_o this_o take_v place_n consider_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n the_o crest_n and_o triumph_n of_o antichrist_n the_o laughter_n of_o satan_n the_o sorrow_n and_o sigh_n of_o a_o number_n the_o misery_n and_o sequel_n of_o the_o tragedy_n i_o write_v with_o zeal_n without_o proof_n of_o my_o matter_n at_o this_o time_n present_a but_o not_o without_o knowledge_n of_o it_o nor_o without_o grief_n of_o mind_n god_n move_v your_o spirit_n at_o this_o present_a to_o fight_v against_o carnem_fw-la circumcisionem_fw-la immo_fw-la concisionem_fw-la against_o literam_fw-la &_o legem_fw-la which_o principal_o be_v now_o regard_v and_o reward_v speak_v i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o to_o the_o queen_n majesty_n to_o the_o chancellor_n and_o to_o mr._n secretary_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o those_o proceed_n may_v sleep_v that_o england_n may_v understand_v your_o zealous_a mind_n towards_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n your_o love_n towards_o the_o poor_a well-willer_n your_o hate_n towards_o the_o profess_a enemy_n your_o unity_n in_o true_a conformity_n the_o other_o neither_o be_v needful_a now_o neither_o exact_v in_o any_o good_a age_n so_o shall_v the_o little_a flock_n be_v bind_v to_o you_o so_o shall_v the_o great_a shepherd_n be_v good_a to_o you_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o false_a accusation_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o dr.'s_n second_o part_n here_o the_o dr._n begin_v with_o the_o description_n of_o their_o principle_n who_o he_o accuse_v i_o be_o one_o of_o they_o and_o the_o first_o sort_n be_v those_o that_o hold_n partial_a and_o occasional_a communion_n with_o our_o church_n to_o be_v lawful_a but_o not_o total_a and_o constant_a viz._n at_o some_o time_n to_o be_v present_a and_o in_o some_o part_n of_o our_o worship_n and_o on_o particular_a occasion_n to_o partake_v of_o some_o act_n of_o communion_n with_o we_o but_o they_o apprehend_v great_a purity_n and_o edification_n in_o separate_a congregation_n and_o when_o they_o be_v to_o choose_v they_o think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o choose_v these_o though_o at_o certain_a season_n they_o may_v think_v it_o lawful_a to_o submit_v to_o occasional_a communion_n with_o our_o church_n the_o second_o sort_n be_v ``_o such_o as_o hold_v any_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n unlawful_a and_o he_o pretend_v to_o proceed_v with_o all_o possible_a clearness_n answ_n i_o be_o sorry_a if_o more_o clearness_n and_o truth_n be_v become_v impossible_a to_o he_o he_o take_v not_o i_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o second_o sort_n and_o therefore_o describe_v i_o as_o of_o the_o first_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n to_o say_v that_o i_o know_v my_o own_o mind_n and_o practice_n better_o than_o he_o do_v though_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o know_v the_o old_a nonconformist_n mind_v better_a than_o they_o do_v themselves_o sect._n 2._o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n must_v first_o be_v notify_v 1._o i_o ever_o distinguish_v the_o national_a diocesan_n parochial_a and_o segregate_v church_n and_o the_o national_a as_o suppose_v organise_v or_o a_o ecclesiastical_o political_a society_n from_o the_o national_a as_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o as_o a_o agree_v association_n of_o church_n without_o any_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a single_a or_o aristocratical_a and_o i_o distinguish_v diocesan_n that_o be_v as_o arch-bishop_n over_o low_a bishop_n and_o those_o that_o be_v like_o we_o infimae_fw-la speciei_fw-la and_o i_o distinguish_v parish_n church_n that_o have_v true_a pastor_n from_o those_o that_o have_v none_o but_o uncapable_a man_n through_o insufficiency_n heresy_n malignity_n or_o as_o usurper_n be_v not_o true_o call_v 2._o according_o i_o conclude_v 1._o that_o the_o parish_n church_n in_o england_n that_o have_v true_a pastor_n be_v true_a political_a govern_v church_n 2._o that_o though_o some_o will_v make_v they_o none_o by_o deny_v to_o the_o pastor_n a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o office_n and_o make_v the_o bishop_n the_o sole_a pastor_n and_o the_o rest_n but_o his_o curate_n and_o the_o parish_n no_o church_n as_o have_v no_o bishop_n but_o to_o be_v only_o as_o chapel_n part_n of_o the_o low_a govern_v church_n diocesan_n and_o so_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n to_o the_o brownist_n call_v separatist_n yet_o true_o such_o parish_n be_v true_a political_a church_n because_o the_o ordainer_n be_v but_o the_o invest_n minister_n the_o office_n be_v not_o essentiate_v as_o he_o will_v or_o say_v but_o as_o god_n the_o instituter_n will_v and_o say_v as_o the_o power_n of_o the_o husband_n over_o the_o wife_n be_v not_o what_o please_v the_o priest_n that_o marry_v they_o but_o what_o please_v god_n who_o give_v it_o by_o his_o law_n and_o as_o the_o lord_n mayor_n power_n be_v not_o what_o please_v the_o recorder_n or_o he_o that_o give_v he_o his_o oath_n or_o insignia_fw-la but_o what_o the_o king_n charter_n give_v and_o the_o king_n power_n be_v not_o what_o he_o will_v that_o crown_v he_o and_o give_v he_o his_o oath_n but_o what_o he_o have_v right_a to_o by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o parish_n churches_n be_v sound_o maintain_v by_o the_o nonconformist_n and_o overthrow_v by_o many_o of_o the_o diocesan_n but_o if_o the_o parish_n minister_v himself_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o essential_o of_o his_o own_o office_n his_o ministry_n may_v be_v valid_a to_o other_o while_o he_o be_v in_o the_o place_n but_o he_o be_v himself_z no_o true_a pastor_n 3._o all_o parish_n be_v no_o true_a govern_v church_n who_o minister_n want_v any_o thing_n essential_a to_o a_o pastor_n nor_o must_v be_v own_v as_o such_o if_o know_v 4._o but_o for_o the_o people_n sake_n they_o be_v true_a church_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la or_o equivocal_o as_o a_o company_n of_o christian_n may_v be_v so_o call_v that_o have_v no_o pastor_n and_o as_o such_o may_v be_v so_o far_o communicate_v with_o 5._o i_o never_o speak_v against_o a_o diocesan_n or_o archbishop_n that_o have_v parish_n church_n and_o true_a pastor_n or_o bishop_n under_o he_o and_o take_v on_o he_o no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n do_v except_v their_o work_n proper_o apostolical_a viz._n by_o the_o word_n and_o not_o the_o sword_n to_o oversee_v and_o instruct_v inferior_a pastor_n 6._o when_o the_o diocesan_n put_v down_o all_o low_a church_n and_o true_a pastor_n i_o own_v not_o that_o do_v nor_o they_o in_o that_o form_n but_o i_o separate_v from_o they_o no_o further_o than_o they_o do_v from_o christ_n 7._o when_o they_o be_v but_o as_o good_a arch-bishop_n take_v care_n of_o many_o church_n whether_o their_o diocese_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o church_n as_o such_o be_v but_o lis_fw-fr de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la i_o find_v not_o that_o any_o apostle_n as_o such_o be_v the_o constitutive_a head_n of_o a_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_a church_n or_o make_v any_o such_o above_o particular_a church_n
nor_o do_v i_o find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n any_o political_a church_n form_n but_o the_o universal_a head_v by_o christ_n and_o particular_a one_o govern_v by_o pastor_n the_o general_n be_v the_o constitutive_a head_n of_o his_o army_n and_o the_o colonel_n of_o his_o regiment_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o his_o troop_n as_o distinct_a subordinate_a body_n but_o the_o major_a general_n general_n of_o the_o ordnance_n quartermaster_n general_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v only_o under_o officer_n to_o the_o whole_a and_o the_o noble_a integral_a part_n but_o as_o such_o no_o constitutive_a head_n of_o any_o body_n of_o man_n whatever_o so_o that_o general_a pastor_n prove_v no_o superior_a proper_a church_n but_o because_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o prudence_n for_o the_o apostle_n to_o have_v take_v several_a province_n limit_v several_o to_o each_o so_o may_v man_n now_o and_o if_o any_o call_v such_o church_n i_o strive_v not_o so_o the_o matter_n be_v agree_v on_o 8._o i_o ever_o own_v a_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o the_o agree_a association_n of_o as_o many_o church_n as_o can_v for_o mutual_a help_n and_o concord_n and_o the_o king_n to_o be_v their_o governor_n by_o the_o sword_n and_o if_o any_o will_v call_v a_o kingdom_n a_o church_n or_o a_o association_n that_o have_v no_o constitutive_a government_n a_o church_n as_o if_o he_o call_v a_o diet_n or_o assembly_n of_o many_o king_n or_o prince_n a_o kingdom_n or_o republic_n let_v he_o enjoy_v his_o equivocation_n so_o we_o understand_v each_o other_o 9_o according_a to_o these_o principle_n i_o own_v myself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o of_o the_o parish_n or_o particular_a church_n where_o for_o the_o time_n i_o be_o call_v to_o be_v that_o be_v as_o they_o be_v but_o i_o think_v i_o may_v remove_v from_o parish_n to_o parish_n as_o i_o have_v cause_n as_o a_o dweller_n or_o a_o lodger_n may_v and_o i_o take_v not_o all_o the_o parish_n to_o be_v the_o church_n and_o take_v parish_n bound_n to_o be_v no_o divine_a institution_n but_o a_o humane_a mutable_a point_n of_o order_n convenient_z when_o by_o accident_n it_o cross_v not_o the_o end_n nor_o do_v more_o harm_n than_o good_a 10._o i_o think_v if_o any_o nobleman_n in_o london_n confine_v his_o ordinary_a communion_n to_o a_o just_a assembly_n in_o his_o happel_n or_o any_o that_o have_v a_o minister_n utter_o unsuitable_a to_o their_o need_n do_v usual_o hold_v communion_n in_o the_o next_o parish_n church_n for_o better_a he_o be_v thereby_o neither_o separatist_n nor_o sinner_n 11._o according_a to_o all_o this_o when_o i_o be_v silence_v i_o ordinary_o hear_v dr._n wilkins_n and_o dr._n tillotson_n and_o communicate_v in_o several_a place_n as_o i_o have_v best_a opportunity_n and_o quick_o go_v to_o acton_n i_o there_o constant_o morning_n and_o evening_n join_v at_o common_a prayer_n and_o sermon_n communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o i_o have_v best_a opportunity_n be_v loath_a for_o the_o parson_n and_o curate_n s●ke_v to_o tell_v you_o why_o it_o be_v not_o there_o once_o with_o dr._n horton_n and_o often_o with_o nonconformist_n the_o plague_n drive_v i_o to_o hambden_n i_o constant_o there_o join_v in_o all_o the_o public_a worship_n and_o sacrament_n return_v to_o acton_n i_o do_v as_o before_o and_o sometime_o repeat_v dean_n rieve_n sermon_n till_o he_o get_v i_o send_v to_o gaol_n for_o teach_v some_o willing_a ignorant_a people_n between_o the_o church_n meeting_n in_o my_o house_n thence_o go_v to_o totteridge_n i_o many_o year_n constant_o twice_o a_o day_n join_v in_o the_o public_a worship_n and_o take_v the_o sacrament_n when_o administer_v as_o mr._n parr_n will_v testify_v thence_o remove_v to_o london_n and_o license_v by_o the_o king_n to_o preach_v i_o forbear_v some_o time_n and_o after_o choose_v only_o the_o market_n house_n at_o st._n james_n open_o declare_v that_o we_o meet_v not_o as_o separate_n from_o the_o public_a church_n but_o for_o the_o need_n of_o multitude_n that_o go_v to_o no_o church_n for_o want_v of_o room_n since_o than_o i_o have_v many_o year_n join_v in_o all_o the_o public_a worship_n word_n prayer_n and_o sacrament_n with_o the_o parish_n church_n when_o able_a since_o that_o i_o also_o sometime_o join_v with_o nonconformist_n and_o preach_v myself_o afternoon_n and_o on_o thursdays_n in_o the_o nonconformist_n chapel_n be_v not_o allow_v to_o do_v it_o otherwise_o in_o the_o country_n in_o summer_n i_o have_v far_o off_o get_v into_o some_o parish_n church_n for_o a_o day_n and_o try_v near_o london_n but_o can_v not_o have_v consent_n though_o i_o have_v bishop_n sheldon_n licence_n for_o that_o diocese_n i_o think_v not_o yet_o invalidate_v this_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n now_o reader_n qu._n 1._o do_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o those_o count_v of_o this_o parish_n church_n hear_v and_o communicate_v so_o oft_o as_o i_o do_v q._n 2._o if_o not_o what_o make_v they_o and_o not_o i_o to_o be_v of_o that_o church_n q._n 3._o what_o be_v the_o constancy_n that_o this_o dr._n make_v necessary_a to_o a_o member_n q._n 4._o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o their_o worship_n which_o he_o say_v i_o join_v not_o in_o have_v he_o name_v any_o q._n 5._o be_v this_o only_a occasional_a join_v sect._n 3_o i_o do_v maintain_v that_o 1._o when_o consideratis_fw-la considerandis_fw-la we_o may_v choose_v the_o pure_a church_n and_o most_o edify_a ministry_n it_o be_v a_o duty_n so_o to_o do_v and_o one_o of_o his_o answer_n the_o rector_n etc._n etc._n have_v in_o the_o epistle_n cite_v his_o own_o word_n not_o out_o of_o the_o retract_v irenicon_n but_o his_o late_a book_n against_o popery_n express_o threaten_v we_o with_o damnation_n if_o we_o do_v not_o to_o which_o i_o find_v no_o excuse_n make_v by_o he_o yea_o the_o papist_n adversary_n grant_v the_o same_o 2._o i_o do_v maintain_v against_o those_o that_o separate_v from_o all_o church_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o be_v state_v member_n of_o that_o its_o lawful_a to_o communicate_v occasional_o where_o we_o may_v not_o do_v it_o stated_o but_o be_v this_o to_o deny_v all_o save_v occasional_a communion_n with_o all_o their_o church_n 3._o i_o often_o say_v that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a difference_n of_o parish_n minister_n and_o of_o person_n case_n and_o opportunity_n and_o relation_n as_o wife_n child_n servant_n under_o parent_n etc._n etc._n of_o divers_a command_n etc._n etc._n that_o to_o be_v constant_a communicant_n in_o their_o parish_n church_n be_v to_o some_o a_o duty_n to_o some_o a_o sin_n and_o so_o be_v occasional_a communion_n sect._n 4._o as_o to_o the_o second_o sort_n that_o hold_v all_o communion_n with_o they_o unlawful_a 1._o i_o leave_v they_o to_o plead_v their_o own_o cause_n and_o i_o meddle_v only_o with_o my_o own_o part_n 2._o but_o i_o must_v say_v that_o if_o they_o mistake_v those_o that_o wilful_o give_v they_o the_o occasion_n be_v unfit_a reprover_n of_o they_o and_o if_o man_n for_o worldly_a end_n or_o by_o error_n will_v corrupt_v and_o defile_v a_o church_n to_o the_o utmost_a that_o be_v consistent_a with_o lawful_a communion_n or_o near_o it_o they_o may_v make_v the_o question_n whether_o their_o communion_n be_v lawful_a too_o hard_o for_o understanding_n every_o one_o can_v tell_v whether_o one_o in_o a_o swoon_n be_v alive_a or_o dead_a and_o some_o may_v bury_v he_o too_o hasty_o stretch_v not_o my_o similitude_n beyond_o my_o meaning_n if_o a_o gentleman_n of_o the_o game_n shall_v by_o wilful_a sin_n get_v the_o lues_fw-la vener●●_n and_o the_o case_n be_v dispute_v whether_o his_o wife_n may_v separate_v from_o he_o or_o if_o he_o beat_v she_o once_o a_o week_n if_o she_o will_v not_o daily_o eat_v that_o which_o make_v her_o grievous_a sick_a and_o he_o do_v it_o to_o exercise_v his_o authority_n another_o may_v better_o plead_v against_o her_o departure_n than_o he_o if_o it_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o she_o so_o to_o save_v herself_o what_o be_v it_o in_o he_o to_o destroy_v or_o abuse_v she_o if_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o take_v poison_n and_o one_o will_v causeless_o command_v we_o to_o take_v a_o doubtful_a thing_n as_o nightshade_n hemlock_n a●ripigmentum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o then_o condemn_v we_o as_o disobedient_a for_o refuse_v he_o be_v the_o unfit_a person_n to_o condemn_v we_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o avoid_v a_o house_n that_o have_v the_o plague_n a_o man_n be_v excusable_a that_o mistake_v the_o spot_a fever_n for_o it_o be_v your_o congregation_n but_o full_a of_o person_n that_o have_v the_o scab_n of_o the_o small_a pox_n not_o dry_v away_o and_o one_o go_v to_o a_o sound_a congregation_n for_o fear_n of_o infection_n not_o at_o all_o condemn_a you_o he_o may_v be_v bear_v with_o
in_o all_o city_n corporation_n or_o place_n aforesaid_a though_o their_o example_n may_v have_v draw_v many_o as_o i_o do_v where_o i_o be_v 11._o minister_n and_o corporation_n and_o vestry_n be_v not_o then_o bind_v to_o swear_v or_o subscribe_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a on_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o to_o resist_v any_o commission_v by_o the_o king_n when_o the_o keeper_n of_o his_o seal_n may_v sign_v commission_n to_o seize_v on_o the_o king_n fort_n garrison_n navy_n and_o treasury_n to_o deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o foreigner_n to_o destroy_v parliament_n city_n and_o law_n i_o be_o sure_a hooker_n bilson_n or_o archbishop_n abbot_n subscribe_v not_o this_o nor_o be_v such_o conformist_n be_v all_o these_o no_o difference_n of_o case_n sect._n 8._o there_o be_v 2._o a_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o drift_n and_o tendency_n of_o the_o imposition_n they_o be_v at_o first_o to_o quiet_a a_o popish_a nation_n while_o the_o true_a doctrine_n take_v possession_n and_o root_n and_o to_o avoid_v the_o cavil_n of_o those_o papist_n that_o charge_v the_o reformer_n with_o forsake_v all_o the_o church_n but_o what_o they_o have_v be_v use_v for_o these_o last_o forty_o or_o fifty_o year_n i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_v 1._o by_o the_o complaint_n of_o all_o the_o parliament_n since_o then_o save_o one_o 2._o by_o the_o history_n of_o archbishop_n laud'_v trial_n 3._o by_o dr._n heylin_n history_n of_o his_o life_n 4._o by_o the_o write_n of_o divine_n such_o as_o mr._n thorndike_n dr._n parker_n dr._n pierce_n archbishop_n bromhall_n and_o many_o more_o such_o and_o by_o the_o papist_n historical_a collection_n out_o of_o such_o see_v dr._n heylin_n description_n of_o the_o reconcile_a plot_n anno_fw-la 1639._o arch_a bishop_n bromhal_o say_v vindicat._n p._n 19_o etc._n etc._n whereas_o mr._n baxter_n do_v accuse_v grotius_n as_o a_o papist_n i_o think_v he_o do_v he_o wrong_n nay_o i_o be_o confident_a he_o do_v he_o wrong_n and_o i_o have_v read_v all_o that_o he_o allege_v to_o prove_v it_o but_o without_o any_o conviction_n or_o alteration_n in_o my_o judgement_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o give_v some_o further_a light_n what_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o grotius_n he_o be_v in_o affection_n a_o friend_n and_o in_o desire_v a_o true_a son_n of_o the_o church_n change_v of_o england_n and_o on_o his_o deathbed_n recommend_v that_o church_n as_o it_o be_v legal_o establish_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o such_o other_o of_o his_o family_n as_o be_v then_o about_o he_o oblige_v they_o by_o his_o authority_n to_o adhere_v firm_o to_o it_o the_o say_a bishop_n though_o no_o papist_n say_v pag._n 81._o approach_n i_o know_v no_o member_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o give_v they_o the_o papist_n either_o more_o or_o less_o than_o i_o do_v compare_v this_o with_o the_o council_n at_o florence_n and_o the_o patriarch_n jeremiah_n write_n and_o the_o present_a sense_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o we_o may_v know_v his_o mind_n but_o my_o ground_n be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n and_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o representative_a body_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n then_o p._n 82._o to_o wave_v their_o last_o four_o hundred_o year_n determination_n be_v implicit_o to_o renounce_v all_o the_o necessary_a cause_n of_o this_o great_a schism_n 1200_o and_o to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o their_o old_a patriarchal_a power_n and_o dignity_n and_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o be_v another_o part_n of_o my_o proposition_n be_v to_o quit_v the_o modern_a papacy_n name_n and_o thing_n pope_n pag._n 84_o 85._o that_o christian_n may_v join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o public_a devotion_n and_o service_n of_o christ_n 1._o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v reduce_v from_o the_o universality_n of_o sovereign_a jurisdiction_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la to_o his_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la and_o his_o court_n regulate_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o be_v desire_v by_o many_o roman_a catholic_n as_o well_o as_o we_o 2._o if_o the_o creed_n be_v reduce_v to_o what_o they_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n with_o only_a necessary_a explication_n and_o those_o make_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n 3._o and_o some_o thing_n whence_o offence_n have_v be_v give_v or_o take_v be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o divine_a office_n whether_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o live_v in_o holy_a communion_n and_o come_v to_o the_o same_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n free_a from_o all_o schismatical_a separation_n term_n pag._n 93._o 1._o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o fix_a chair_n at_o antioch_n and_o after_o at_o rome_n be_v a_o truth_n 2._o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n among_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o unanimous_a voice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 3._o some_o father_n and_o schoolman_n who_o be_v no_o swear_a vassal_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v affirm_v that_o this_o primacy_n of_o order_n be_v fix_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n p._n 97._o though_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v such_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n by_o divine_a right_n or_o humane_a it_o will_v not_o prejudice_v we_o at_o all_o nor_o be_v worth_a the_o contend_v about_o but_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o by_o divine_a right_n in_o foro_fw-la exteriore_fw-la 2._o nor_o elsewhere_o interiore_fw-la but_o executive_a according_a to_o the_o canon_n not_o whereas_o i_o say_v that_o protestant_n that_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n patriarchal_a power_n over_o we_o in_o the_o west_n will_v fall_v under_o the_o reproach_n of_o schism_n he_o say_v p._n 104._o etc._n etc._n mu_o a_o man_n quit_v his_o just_a right_a because_o some_o dislike_n it_o their_o dislike_n be_v but_o scandal_n take_v but_o the_o quit_n of_o that_o which_o be_v right_a for_o their_o satisfaction_n shall_v be_v scandal_n give_v desire_v if_o they_o be_v force_v to_o fall_v under_o the_o reproach_n of_o schismatic_n it_o be_v by_o their_o own_o wilful_a humour_n or_o erroneous_a conscience_n other_o force_n there_o be_v none_o 2._o whether_o be_v the_o worse_o and_o more_o dangerous_a condition_n to_o fall_v under_o the_o reproach_n of_o schism_n or_o to_o fall_v into_o schism_n itself_o whosoever_o shall_v oppose_v the_o just_a power_n of_o a_o lawful_a patriarch_n lawful_o proceed_v be_v a_o material_a schismatic_a at_o least_o p._n 107._o it_o be_v unsound_a argue_v to_o deny_v a_o man_n his_o just_a right_n for_o fear_n lest_o he_o may_v abuse_v it_o as_o a_o patriarchal_a power_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n just_a right_n they_o who_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o patriarch_n be_v the_o primitive_a father_n not_o exclude_v the_o apostle_n and_o christian_a emperor_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n what_o law_n they_o make_v in_o this_o case_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v for_o conscience_n sake_n till_o lawful_o repeal_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n england_n much_o more_o he_o have_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o p._n 112._o for_o unite_n the_o church_n catholic_n on_o humane_a term_n and_o p._n 117._o against_o the_o people_n liberty_n of_o read_v and_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o after_o at_o large_a that_o concord_n must_v be_v on_o humane_a term_n p._n 122._o grotius_n judgement_n be_v and_o i_o be_v moderate_a but_o have_v not_o this_o man_n be_v so_o own_v by_o many_o now_o i_o have_v not_o cite_v so_o much_o of_o he_o and_o for_o grotius_n i_o have_v over_o and_o over_o cite_v his_o own_o word_n and_o shall_v not_o now_o repeat_v they_o and_o be_v this_o the_o drift_n of_o conformity_n of_o old_a 3._o sect._n 9_o another_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o effect_n for_o with_o we_o thing_n not_o universal_o or_o absolute_o determine_v by_o god_n be_v to_o be_v use_v or_o refuse_v as_o they_o do_v more_o good_a or_o hurt_n 1._o then_o open_a preach_v and_o gather_v assembly_n by_o nonconformist_n will_v have_v great_o offend_v the_o prince_n but_o our_o king_n at_o breda_n and_o in_o his_o three_o first_o declaration_n and_o by_o his_o licenses_fw-la and_o connivance_n show_v such_o wisdom_n and_o clemency_n as_o intimate_v less_o displeasure_n at_o our_o liberty_n 2._o it_o will_v have_v deprive_v most_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n of_o their_o hope_n of_o public_a liberty_n in_o the_o parish_n church_n which_o most_o of_o they_o enjoy_v but_o we_o have_v neither_o possession_n nor_o expectation_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n 3._o it_o will_v have_v hinder_v and_o hazard_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o our_o preach_n have_v do_v more_o to_o stop_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o syncretism_n or_o of_o popery_n other_o know_v this_o whatever_o you_o frivolous_o
more_n and_o more_o untruth_n 1._o where_o do_v i_o say_v that_o own_v itself_o to_o be_v independent_a as_o if_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o its_o be_v 1._o do_v he_o not_o confess_v that_o i_o own_o general_a visitor_n or_o archbishop_n and_o appeal_n 2._o that_o i_o own_o association_n which_o he_o make_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 3._o that_o i_o own_o synod_n for_o oblige_a concord_n 4._o that_o i_o own_o the_o magistrate_n government_n of_o all_o be_v there_o no_o dependency_n in_o any_o of_o these_o or_o all_o what_o dependency_n more_o do_v he_o assert_v 2._o as_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n dare_v he_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o tell_v we_o whether_o any_o power_n of_o the_o key_n that_o be_v of_o the_o government_n of_o his_o particular_a church_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o true_a organise_v govern_v church_n or_o not_o if_o not_o be_v it_o not_o a_o contradiction_n to_o call_v it_o a_o govern_v church_n if_o yea_o than_o be_v he_o a_o pastor_n that_o want_v what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o pastor_n but_o if_o they_o will_v call_v a_o force_a power_n or_o the_o present_a secular_a mode_n of_o their_o court_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o key_n i_o never_o say_v that_o these_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n nor_o desirable_a in_o it_o but_o be_o a_o nonconformist_n because_o i_o will_v not_o by_o oath_n or_o covenant_n renounce_v just_a endeavour_n to_o amend_v it_o sect._n 12._o p._n 121_o 122._o the_o next_o accusation_n be_v they_o leave_v it_o in_o the_o people_n power_n notwithstanding_o all_o legal_a establishment_n to_o own_o or_o disown_n who_o they_o judge_v fit_a answ_n he_o tire_v i_o with_o put_v i_o on_o repetition_n 1._o they_o can_v unjust_o judge_v of_o none_o and_o disow_v they_o without_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o give_v man_n power_n to_o sin_n no_o more_o than_o power_n to_o die_v or_o be_v sick_a which_o be_v but_o impotency_n will_v i_o can_v give_v they_o power_n against_o it_o 2._o it_o be_v not_o power_n to_o reject_v any_o choose_v by_o king_n or_o patron_n from_o be_v public_a teacher_n or_o to_o have_v the_o tithe_n and_o temple_n nor_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n to_o other_o but_o it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o discern_a judgement_n whether_o one_o choose_v by_o the_o patron_n be_v a_o person_n to_o who_o he_o himself_o ought_v to_o trust_v the_o pastoral_a conduct_n of_o his_o soul_n either_o the_o dr._n think_v that_o layman_n have_v this_o discern_a power_n and_o duty_n or_o not_o if_o yea_o be_v it_o nothing_o to_o he_o to_o seem_v thus_o serious_o to_o plead_v against_o his_o conscience_n if_o not_o i_o ask_v he_o 1._o what_o mean_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o call_v man_n to_o beware_v of_o false_a teacher_n to_o avoid_v the_o leven_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o mark_v they_o and_o avoid_v they_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o they_o and_o not_o bid_v they_o good_a speed_n 2._o what_o mean_v all_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o forbid_v communion_n with_o heretic_n and_o even_o some_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o hear_v mass_n of_o fornicator_n ●_o what_o mean_v all_o those_o father_n and_o council_n that_o make_v he_o no_o bishop_n that_o come_v not_o in_o with_o the_o people_n consent_n if_o not_o election_n 4._o why_o will_v he_o not_o be_v entreat_v to_o tell_v we_o in_o what_o country_n or_o with_o what_o limitation_n the_o contrary_a doctrine_n must_v be_v receive_v must_v all_o the_o people_n trust_v only_o such_o pastor_n as_o the_o prince_n or_o patron_n choose_v all_o over_o england_n or_o also_o in_o ireland_n france_n spain_n italy_n germany_n among_o lutheran_n calvinist_n greek_n etc._n etc._n suppose_v the_o law_n be_v on_o that_o side_n must_v we_o all_o be_v of_o the_o king_n or_o patron_n religion_n 5._o be_v this_o agreeable_a to_o his_o old_a doctrine_n cite_v chap._n 1._o sect._n 13._o p._n 122._o he_o add_v mr._n baxter_n speak_v his_o mind_n very_o free_o against_o the_o right_n and_o patronage_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n in_o such_o case_n and_o plead_v for_o the_o unalterable_a right_n of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o old_a separatist_n do_v ans_fw-fr be_v this_o true_a 1._o what_o be_v it_o against_o the_o right_n of_o patronage_n or_o magistrate_n power_n for_o i_o to_o choose_v who_o i_o will_v trust_v the_o guidance_n of_o my_o soul_n with_o while_o i_o contradict_v not_o his_o power_n to_o choose_v public_a teacher_n and_o give_v the_o tithe_n and_o temple_n and_o confess_v that_o for_o order_n sake_n i_o ought_v to_o consent_v to_o such_o as_o he_o choose_v thus_o unless_o he_o put_v on_o i_o a_o true_a necessity_n of_o a_o better_a choice_n if_o the_o king_n choose_v all_o the_o hospital_n physician_n what_o wrong_n be_v it_o to_o he_o if_o i_o at_o my_o own_o charge_n choose_v a_o better_a for_o myself_o when_o i_o think_v else_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n will_v murder_v i_o do_v he_o that_o desire_v as_o i_o ever_o do_v that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o case_n there_o may_v be_v many_o lock_n to_o the_o church_n door_n deny_v any_o one_o of_o they_o viz._n the_o ordainers_n consent_n the_o magistrate_n and_o patron_n and_o the_o people_n be_v this_o the_o same_o that_o the_o old_a separatist_n do_v shall_v glocesier_n take_v goodman_n a_o papist_n for_o their_o bishop_n because_o the_o king_n choose_v he_o abundance_n of_o patron_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n reign_n present_v papist_n it_o seem_v if_o they_o be_v impose_v by_o law_n and_o patron_n you_o will_v have_v the_o people_n submit_v to_o those_o that_o cry_v down_o bishop_n liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n too_o father_n paul_n sarpi_n translate_v by_o dr._n denton_n will_v tell_v you_o how_o new_a a_o way_n this_o be_v sect._n 14._o p._n 122._o he_o add_v the_o people_n be_v make_v judge_n of_o the_o competency_n of_o their_o minister_n answ_n they_o be_v discern_v judge_n do_v not_o your_o charge_n imply_v that_o you_o think_v otherwise_o and_o yet_o you_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o must_v they_o not_o judge_v when_o foreigner_n heretofore_o be_v set_v over_o they_o whether_o they_o speak_v english_a or_o no_o or_o if_o a_o socinian_n deny_v christ_n godhead_n or_o the_o in_o mortality_n of_o the_o soul_n whether_o he_o be_v competent_a or_o not_o or_o if_o they_o have_v a_o ignorant_a curate_n that_o when_o necessary_a advice_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v ask_v of_o he_o will_v say_v no_o more_o but_o trouble_v not_o your_o head_n about_o such_o matter_n but_o cast_v away_o care_n and_o live_v merry_o if_o when_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n must_v we_o not_o note_v the_o difference_n alas_o how_o little_a will_v some_o man_n have_v a_o man_n care_n for_o his_o soul_n in_o comparison_n of_o care_v what_o physic_n what_o food_n what_o wife_n what_o servant_n what_o trade_n he_o choose_v trust_v one_o to_o the_o conduct_n of_o such_o as_o all_o the_o patron_n of_o england_n will_v choose_v for_o you_o but_o not_o any_o of_o the_o other_o as_o to_o the_o not_o causeless_a forsake_v former_a pastor_n he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o strict_a charge_n of_o the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o do_v hold_v the_o same_o i_o think_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v because_o man_n thrust_v they_o out_o the_o church_n at_o antioch_n alexandria_n and_o many_o more_o do_v oft_o and_o long_o cleave_v to_o those_o pastor_n who_o the_o christian_a emperor_n cast_v out_o and_o reject_v those_o who_o they_o impose_v when_o i_o have_v prove_v this_o so_o full_o in_o my_o first_o plea_n and_o church-history_n what_o a_o unsatisfactory_a answer_n be_v it_o for_o such_o a_o dr._n to_o repeat_v it_o and_o say_v this_o be_v plain_a deal_n be_v the_o judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n so_o light_a with_o he_o sect._n 15._o p._n 123._o the_o next_o charge_n be_v they_o give_v direction_n to_o the_o people_n what_o sort_n of_o minister_n they_o shall_v own_v and_o what_o not_o answ_n we_o do_v so_o and_o i_o have_v think_v all_o christian_n have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n it_o be_v sad_a with_o the_o church_n when_o this_o doctrine_n need_v a_o public_a defence_n dare_v he_o say_v that_o all_o impose_v must_v be_v own_v then_o either_o salvation_n be_v at_o the_o magistrate_n will_v or_o it_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o such_o country_n as_o have_v good_a one_o or_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o country_n religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o article_n which_o they_o all_o subscribe_v sect._n 16._o next_o the_o accuser_n fall_v on_o my_o general_a rule_n the_o ministry_n that_o tend_v to_o destruction_n more_o than_o to_o edification_n and_o to_o do_v
their_o several_a fix_a province_n which_o i_o never_o see_v prove_v i_o will_v not_o contend_v whether_o those_o province_n may_v be_v call_v church_n if_o we_o agree_v about_o the_o thing_n use_v the_o name_n as_o you_o see_v cause_n sect._n 9_o and_o to_o your_o talk_n of_o our_o bishop_n be_v of_o the_o same_o sort_n i_o ask_v you_o whether_o any_o of_o the_o bishop_n for_o 300_o year_n or_o for_o long_a after_o save_v cyril_n alexand._n by_o violence_n do_v ever_o use_v or_o claim_v any_o power_n over_o any_o minister_n or_o christian_n beside_o mere_a fatherly_a teach_v persuade_v urge_v god_n word_n on_o they_o and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o particular_a person_n by_o admonition_n verbal_a censure_n and_o absolution_n do_v they_o meddle_v by_o force_n with_o body_n or_o purse_n let_v your_o bishop_n use_v no_o other_o force_n or_o way_n of_o constraint_n than_o the_o apostle_n do_v if_o they_o be_v their_o successor_n and_o not_o lay_v the_o excommunicate_a in_o prison_n and_o ruin_v their_o body_n and_o estate_n &_o valeat_fw-la quantum_fw-la valere_fw-la potest_fw-la but_o mr._n glanvile_n and_o many_o of_o you_o tell_v we_o how_o little_a you_o care_v for_o it_o without_o the_o sword_n sect._n 10._o if_o any_o man_n will_v but_o consider_v what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o greg._n nazianzen_n that_o say_v man_n unfit_a be_v so_o ambitious_a to_o be_v of_o the_o clergy_n that_o the_o clergy_n be_v in_o many_o church_n almost_o as_o many_o as_o the_o laity_n and_o that_o presbyter_n than_o be_v much_o like_o the_o presbyterian_o elder_n save_v that_o they_o have_v the_o power_n of_o word_n and_o sacrament_n though_o they_o seldom_o exercise_v preach_v in_o city_n but_o leave_v that_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o number_n of_o their_o acoluthi_fw-la exorcistae_fw-la ostiarii_fw-la lectores_fw-la subdiaconi_fw-la diaconi_fw-la etc._n etc._n make_v up_o the_o great_a body_n of_o they_o and_o the_o very_a boy_n and_o scholar_n that_o be_v breed_v up_o under_o they_o yea_o or_o but_o for_o church-singing_a be_v sometime_o join_v to_o make_v up_o the_o number_n see_v isidor_n de_fw-fr offic._n eccl._n l._n 2._o even_o all_o the_o monk_n be_v often_o number_v with_o they_o and_o victor_n cite_v by_o he_o seem_v to_o number_v twice_o the_o infantuli_fw-la so_o breed_v up_o with_o the_o great_a number_n of_o reader_n to_o the_o carthage_n clergy_n i_o say_v he_o that_o consider_v all_o this_o will_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o number_n of_o people_n or_o church_n by_o the_o number_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o he_o will_v do_v now_o with_o we_o where_o the_o great_a parish_n have_v but_o two_o or_o three_o priest_n sect._n 11._o and_o as_o to_o the_o cause_n that_o i_o plead_v for_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o even_o when_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o episcopi_fw-la pastorum_fw-la yet_o the_o presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o be_v episcopi_fw-la gregis_fw-la and_o exercise_v this_o power_n in_o their_o distant_a country_n assembly_n though_o under_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o exercise_v his_o with_o they_o as_o assistant_n so_o that_o the_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o real_o unchurch_v sect._n 12._o p._n 265._o he_o come_v near_o our_o controversy_n but_o first_o false_o state_v the_o question_n suppose_v that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o be_v the_o dispute_v of_o a_o question_n false_o state_v of_o any_o profit_n i_o only_o say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o church-pastor_n or_o presbyter_n have_v three_o essential_a part_n viz._n the_o power_n of_o teach_v the_o church_n of_o conduct_v they_o in_o worship_n and_o govern_v the_o people_n by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n and_o that_o he_o that_o destroy_v one_o part_n that_o be_v essential_a though_o he_o swallow_v not_o up_o all_o the_o power_n alter_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o office_n and_o that_o so_o the_o english_a diocesan_n form_n do_v i_o have_v large_o prove_v in_o my_o treat_n of_o episcopacy_n which_o he_o do_v not_o answer_v sect._n 13._o 1._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o low_a house_n in_o the_o convocation_n and_o so_o have_v their_o vote_n in_o pass_v all_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n article_n of_o doctrine_n and_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n ans_fw-fr 1._o according_a to_o his_o description_n the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v no_o one_o ecclesiastical_a government_n either_o monarchical_a or_o aristocratical_a or_o democratical_a and_o therefore_o the_o act_n of_o the_o convocation_n be_v no_o act_n of_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o mere_a agreement_n therefore_o this_o prove_v not_o the_o presbyter_n power_n of_o govern_v it_o 2._o if_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o government_n it_o be_v the_o legislative_a part_n or_o the_o executive_a the_o late_a it_o be_v not_o the_o former_a the_o lawyer_n say_v it_o be_v not_o king_n and_o parliament_n only_o be_v legislator_n but_o if_o this_o be_v legislation_n we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v any_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o question_n which_o be_v but_o to_o judge_v who_o be_v fit_a or_o unfit_a for_o church-communion_n to_o admonish_v absolve_v or_o excommunicate_v according_a to_o christ_n law_n and_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o christ_n law_n and_o not_o the_o make_n of_o new_a law_n 3._o it_o be_v lie_fw-la sub_fw-la judice_fw-la whether_o the_o thing_n here_o name_v be_v any_o part_n of_o true_a lawful_a church-government_n rule_n of_o discipline_n christ_n have_v make_v enough_o except_o about_o mere_a mutable_a accident_n article_n of_o doctrine_n man_n must_v not_o otherwise_o make_v than_o to_o declare_v what_o he_o believe_v christ_n have_v make_v form_n of_o divine_a service_n command_v to_o all_o other_o the_o apostle_n never_o make_v nor_o that_o we_o find_v appoint_v any_o other_o to_o make_v they_o if_o these_o be_v lawful_a by_o way_n of_o agreement_n of_o many_o church_n this_o be_v none_o of_o the_o power_n we_o speak_v of_o yet_o he_o call_v this_o one_o of_o the_o great_a right_n of_o government_n viz._n make_v rule_n for_o the_o whole_a body_n which_o he_o deny_v to_o have_v any_o constitutive_a government_n sect._n 14._o he_o say_v in_o this_o main_a part_n of_o government_n our_o church_n fall_v behind_o none_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n only_a there_o they_o be_v take_v single_o in_o every_o city_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr that_o be_v 1._o when_o the_o minister_n of_o a_o diocese_n choose_v four_o out_o of_o who_o the_o bishop_n take_v two_o and_o 2._o this_o only_a to_o make_v agreement_n without_o any_o govern_n power_n over_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 3._o and_o this_o only_a about_o general_a regulation_n 4._o in_o either_o unlawful_a or_o doubtful_a imposition_n on_o other_o about_o mere_a accident_n or_o circumstance_n of_o order_n this_o be_v the_o same_o or_o as_o good_a as_o when_o every_o true_a church_n have_v present_a pastor_n personal_o to_o exercise_v the_o executive_a church-government_n call_v the_o key_n by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n already_o make_v in_o judge_v the_o case_n of_o each_o particular_a person_n as_o to_o his_o title_n to_o church-communion_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o by_o we_o be_v plead_v for_o sect._n 15._o next_o he_o tell_v we_o of_o four_o that_o be_v to_o join_v in_o ordinatiom_n and_o examination_n when_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o the_o make_n or_o govern_v of_o pastor_n which_o i_o be_o speak_v of_o but_o the_o government_n of_o the_o flock_n 2._o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n for_o our_o bishop_n to_o say_v that_o both_o in_o convocation_n and_o ordination_n the_o presbyter_n act_v only_o as_o the_o bishop_n council_n and_o the_o bishop_n only_a act_n by_o govern_v authority_n 3._o i_o never_o dispute_v for_o presbyter_n power_n to_o ordain_v as_o essential_a to_o they_o nor_o do_v i_o ever_o meddle_v in_o any_o ordination_n 4._o if_o four_o presbyter_n have_v such_o power_n that_o prove_v not_o that_o four_o hundred_o have_v it_o that_o never_o exercise_v it_o in_o the_o same_o diocese_n 5._o if_o by_o all_o this_o you_o mean_v that_o real_o presbyter_n have_v the_o govern_v power_n of_o the_o key_n it_o condemn_v those_o the_o more_o that_o give_v it_o to_o four_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o four_o hundred_o or_o one_o thousand_o 6._o when_o i_o be_v ordain_v none_o examine_v we_o but_o the_o bishop_n chaplain_n and_o two_o or_o three_o city_n minister_n call_v by_o the_o bishop_n that_o never_o see_v we_o before_o mere_o pro_fw-la formâ_fw-la lay_v hand_n on_o we_o with_o he_o but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o you_o give_v such_o a_o power_n to_o ordain_v sect._n 16._o next_o p._n 267._o he_o
far_o to_o heal_v we_o can_v we_o obtain_v it_o he_o say_v that_o any_o one_o that_o have_v see_v they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mistake_n to_o say_v it_o be_v publish_v by_o john_n fox_n ans_fw-fr his_o reader_n must_v be_v a_o strong_a believer_n and_o take_v much_o on_o his_o word_n 1._o i_o have_v see_v they_o and_o speak_v with_o man_n of_o great_a understanding_n that_o have_v see_v they_o that_o yet_o judge_v it_o no_o mistake_n 2._o the_o preface_n of_o the_o publisher_n be_v like_o his_o style_n 3._o it_o be_v call_v praefatio_fw-la i._n f._n and_o can_v every_o reader_n know_v that_o i._o f._n mean_v not_o john_n fox_n 4._o ordinary_a tradition_n say_v it_o be_v fox_n and_o what_o shall_v i_o soon_o believe_v in_o such_o a_o case_n instead_o of_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v all_o a_o power_n to_o their_o condemnation_n which_o we_o see_v they_o exercise_v not_o let_v he_o procure_v a_o real_a power_n declare_v and_o grant_v and_o it_o will_v do_v more_o than_o these_o word_n sect._n 23._o but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o question_n whether_o i_o may_v so_o much_o as_o call_v a_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n by_o name_n before_o the_o church_n who_o reject_v all_o more_o private_a admonition_n he_o put_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o obligation_n to_o admonish_v public_o a_o offender_n or_o to_o deny_v he_o the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o will_v come_v to_o it_o be_v so_o great_a as_o to_o bear_v he_o out_o in_o the_o violation_n of_o a_o law_n make_v by_o public_a authority_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr the_o first_o question_n be_v whether_o christ_n have_v not_o make_v his_o church_n so_o different_a a_o thing_n from_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v open_o difference_v by_o a_o communion_n of_o saint_n 2._o and_o whether_o he_o have_v not_o institute_v a_o office_n to_o judge_v of_o this_o and_o by_o government_n execute_v it_o and_o 3._o whether_o any_o man_n have_v authority_n to_o suspend_v this_o law_n or_o office_n and_o then_o 4._o i_o shall_v grant_v that_o not_o only_a discipline_n but_o preach_v and_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n may_v be_v forbear_v hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la in_o the_o present_a exercise_n when_o else_o the_o exercise_n will_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a 5._o but_o be_v these_o law_n good_a that_o forbid_v it_o and_o shall_v we_o covenant_n never_o to_o endeavour_v a_o alteration_n sect._n 24._o he_o next_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o great_a difficulty_n of_o exercise_v true_a discipline_n which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o seem_v thence_o to_o defend_v the_o forbearance_n of_o it_o with_o we_o answ_n i_o have_v in_o my_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o oft_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o christ_n end_n and_o that_o he_o will_v have_v it_o continue_v to_o the_o last_o and_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o practical_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o make_v small_a difference_n between_o the_o church_n and_o the_o world_n tend_v to_o church_n destruction_n and_o to_o the_o reproach_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o utter_a undo_n of_o million_o of_o soul_n and_o though_o pope_n and_o prelate_n have_v abuse_v it_o to_o captivate_v prince_n and_o nation_n the_o just_a use_n of_o it_o he_o know_v be_v mention_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o visible_o record_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o several_a age_n though_o some_o erastians_n be_v of_o late_a against_o it_o and_o jesuit_n and_o worldly_a protestant_n can_v dispense_v with_o it_o when_o it_o will_v hurt_v their_o worldly_a interest_n and_o turn_v it_o chief_o against_o god_n servant_n that_o displease_v and_o cross_v they_o sect._n 25._o p._n 284._o he_o say_v the_o want_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o parish_n church_n be_v never_o think_v by_o old_a nonconformist_n destructive_a to_o the_o be_v of_o they_o answ_n they_o do_v not_o confound_v the_o power_n and_o the_o exercise_n nor_o what_o the_o minister_n office_n be_v indeed_o and_o from_o god_n and_o what_o it_o be_v by_o the_o bishop_n mind_n and_o rule_n of_o conformity_n i_o say_v as_o they_o 1._o the_o exercise_n may_v be_v suspend_v without_o null_v the_o power_n or_o policy_n 2._o they_o be_v true_a pastor_n and_o church_n by_o god_n will_n against_o the_o will_n of_o those_o that_o will_v degrade_v they_o sect._n 26._o but_o suppose_v every_o man_n leave_v to_o his_o own_o conscience_n for_o communion_n 1._o he_o say_v the_o great_a offender_n general_o excommunicate_v themselves_o answ_n 1._o and_o be_v it_o your_o way_n to_o leave_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o their_o conscience_n and_o yet_o to_o preach_v and_o write_v against_o and_o lay_v in_o jail_n dissent_v godly_a people_n that_o communicate_v not_o with_o you_o 2._o and_o be_v not_o all_o these_o offender_n still_o member_n of_o your_o church_n albaspineus_n complain_v of_o their_o roman_a french_a church_n that_o he_o never_o know_v any_o further_a cast_n out_o than_o from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o leave_v still_o to_o other_o part_n of_o communion_n as_o member_n and_o so_o do_v you_o by_o thousand_o who_o be_v all_o son_n of_o your_o church_n but_o we_o be_v none_o he_o be_v again_o at_o it_o what_o church_n i_o be_v of_o and_o i_o have_v tell_v he_o oft_o enough_o chap._n viii_o what_o the_o national_a church_n of_o england_n be_v sect._n 1_o according_a to_o the_o doctor_n method_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o explication_n of_o one_o of_o the_o term_n of_o our_o controversy_n so_o long_o and_o loud_o call_v for_o viz._n what_o the_o national_a church_n of_o england_n be_v which_o we_o must_v obey_v and_o from_o which_o we_o be_v say_v to_o separate_v p._n 287._o and_o the_o answer_n be_v such_o as_o may_v tell_v dr._n fulwood_n and_o he_o that_o its_o time_n to_o give_v over_o wonder_v that_o i_o understand_v not_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o sect._n 2._o our_o question_n be_v of_o the_o church_n policy_n and_o political_n form_n all_o writer_n of_o politic_n difference_n a_o mere_a community_n from_o a_o political_a body_n this_o be_v essentiate_v of_o the_o two_o constitutive_a part_n the_o pars_fw-la regens_fw-la and_o pars_fw-la subdita_fw-la the_o former_a be_v much_o like_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o late_a the_o body_n the_o rule_v part_n be_v call_v the_o form_n by_o most_o and_o the_o sort_n monarchical_a aristocratical_a democratical_a or_o mix_v the_o form_n in_o specie_fw-la as_o the_o rational_a or_o sensitive_a soul_n to_o animal_n but_o the_o relative_n form_n be_v the_o union_n of_o both_o in_o their_o proper_a order_n such_o a_o body_n politic_a be_v a_o kingdom_n a_o city_n a_o church_n in_o the_o proper_a and_o usual_a sense_n but_o in_o a_o loose_a sense_n many_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v a_o church_n as_o 1._o a_o community_n prepare_v for_o a_o govern_v form_n not_o yet_o receive_v 2._o a_o occasional_a congregation_n about_o religion_n as_o prisoner_n that_o pray_v together_o man_n that_o meet_v about_o a_o religious_a consultation_n or_o dispute_n etc._n etc._n 3._o many_o church_n as_o under_o one_o christian_a magistrate_n as_o a_o accidental_a head_n 4._o many_o church_n associate_v for_o mutual_a help_n and_o concord_n without_o any_o govern_n head_n either_o of_o one_o kingdom_n or_o of_o many_o 5._o many_o church_n as_o mere_o agree_v in_o judgement_n and_o love_n in_o distant_a part_n of_o the_o world_n none_o of_o these_o be_v church_n in_o the_o political_a sense_n but_o be_v equivocal_o so_o call_v but_o political_o 1._o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v one_o church_n as_o form_v by_o their_o relation_n to_o christ_n the_o head_n 2._o all_o single_a church_n that_o have_v pastor_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n be_v true_a church_n form_v by_o this_o mutual_a relation_n these_o two_o be_v undoubted_a 3._o the_o now_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v one_o by_o usurpation_n as_o inform_v by_o one_o usurp_a head_n 4._o a_o patriarchal_a church_n be_v one_o as_o govern_v by_o a_o patriarch_n 5._o a_o provincial_a church_n be_v one_o as_o head_v by_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o as_o mix_v where_o aristocratical_o other_o be_v join_v with_o he_o 6._o a_o archiepiscopal_a or_o diocesan_n church_n that_o have_v particular_a church_n and_o bishop_n under_o it_o be_v one_o as_o head_v by_o that_o diocesane_n jure_fw-la a_o injuriâ_fw-la i_o dispute_v not_o 7._o a_o diocesane_n church_n of_o many_o score_n or_o hundred_o parish_n have_v no_o episcopus_fw-la gregis_fw-la or_o true_a pastor_n and_o pastoral_a church_n under_o he_o but_o only_o half_a pastor_n and_o chapel_n that_o be_v but_o part_n ecclesia_fw-la be_v one_o even_o of_o the_o low_a sort_n in_o their_o opinion_n as_o head_v by_o that_o diocesane_n 8._o a_o presbyterian_a classical_a church_n be_v one_o as_o head_v by_o the_o class_n 9_o a_o
be_o glad_a i_o understand_v you_o §_o 12._o say_v he_o quest_n by_o what_o way_n this_o national_a consent_n be_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o this_o church_n the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o presbyter_n summon_v by_o the_o king_n be_v write_v be_v to_o advise_v and_o declare_v their_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o receive_v and_o enact_v by_o parliament_n there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o national_a consent_v as_o to_o any_o law_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n minister_n and_o people_n make_v up_o this_o national_a church_n answ_n now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o bottom_n and_o 1._o our_o question_n be_v of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o doctor_n tell_v we_o the_o administration_n make_v it_o to_o consult_v and_o advise_v and_o make_v law_n be_v act_n of_o administration_n and_o follow_v the_o constitution_n man_n must_v have_v power_n before_o they_o use_v it_o and_o must_v be_v a_o church_n before_o they_o act_n 〈◊〉_d church_n 2._o yea_o to_o advise_v and_o consult_v be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o act_n proper_a to_o administer_a government_n but_o belong_v to_o those_o that_o be_v no_o governor_n also_o 3._o if_o they_o be_v no_o law_n till_o the_o parliament_n make_v they_o such_o then_o either_o the_o parliament_n be_v your_o church_n head_n or_o you_o have_v none_o that_o be_v ecclesiastical_a but_o have_v your_o plain_a confession_n that_o you_o have_v no_o such_o regent_n part_n and_o so_o be_v no_o church_n political_n save_o civil_a but_o a_o mere_a association_n i_o ask_v §_o 13._o 1._o why_o do_v you_o pretend_v that_o we_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o that_o we_o vent_v our_o spleen_n against_o it_o or_o deny_v it_o who_o deny_v not_o associate_v church_n in_o england_n under_o one_o civil_a government_n 2._o how_o unhappy_o be_v the_o church-defender_n and_o conformist_n disagree_v read_v mr._n dodwell_n and_o many_o such_o other_o that_o take_v the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o govern_v body_n politic_a and_o see_v what_o they_o will_v judge_n of_o you_o 3._o be_v not_o you_o and_o i_o like_a to_o be_v of_o one_o church_n of_o england_n who_o agree_v what_o it_o be_v than_o you_o and_o those_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n that_o speak_v of_o two_o different_a thing_n and_o agree_v not_o so_o much_o as_o what_o it_o be_v 4._o have_v you_o not_o bring_v your_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o a_o fair_a issue_n by_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o church_n in_o the_o question_v political_a sense_n 5._o what_o make_v you_o before_o talk_v of_o be_v under_o one_o government_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o civil_a be_v your_o govern_v church_n as_o such_o only_a civil_a or_o a_o kingdom_n only_o 6._o do_v you_o not_o now_o absolve_v all_o man_n from_o the_o duty_n of_o obey_v the_o church_n of_o england_n a●_n such_o and_o from_o all_o guilt_n of_o disobey_v they_o how_o can_v man_n govern_v that_o be_v no_o governor_n and_o how_o can_v we_o obey_v they_o it_o be_v only_o the_o civil_a power_n than_o that_o we_o herein_o disobey_v if_o you_o say_v that_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v governor_n and_o altogether_o govern_v the_o whole_a i_o answer_v yes_o per_fw-la part_n but_o not_o as_o a_o whole_a or_o church_n if_o twenty_o family_n in_o a_o village_n agree_v as_o master_n and_o servant_n to_o go_v one_o way_n as_o consenter_n this_o make_v no_o one_o government_n of_o the_o village_n if_o the_o physician_n of_o london_n consent_n to_o one_o pharmacopeia_n that_o make_v they_o not_o a_o body_n politic_a if_o twenty_o sea_n captain_n consent_v to_o go_v one_o voyage_n by_o one_o rule_n each_o one_o be_v a_o governor_n of_o his_o own_o ship_n but_o this_o make_v no_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a all_o the_o justice_n and_o mayor_n of_o england_n rule_v the_o kingdom_n per_fw-la part_n by_o the_o same_o law_n but_o all_o together_o make_v not_o one_o aristocracy_n to_o govern_v the_o kingdom_n as_o one_o whole_a unless_o your_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n be_v unite_v in_o one_o persona_fw-la politica_fw-la or_o aristocracy_n they_o may_v rule_v their_o several_a church_n but_o they_o make_v not_o one_o common_a government_n for_o the_o national_a church_n as_o such_o a_o agreement_n of_o the_o emperor_n spaniard_n and_o other_o confederate_n make_v not_o one_o kingdom_n or_o body_n politic_a 7._o how_o can_v they_o be_v schismatic_n for_o disobey_v they_o that_o be_v not_o their_o governor_n 8._o how_o come_v dissenter_n bind_v by_o parliament_n consent_n if_o it_o never_o be_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o trust_v they_o as_o consenter_n for_o they_o yea_o and_o declare_v their_o own_o dissent_n as_o most_o of_o the_o nation_n do_v late_o against_o prelacy_n and_o liturgy_n yea_o and_o their_o choose_a representative_n have_v such_o representative_n more_o power_n to_o express_v our_o consent_n than_o we_o ourselves_o 9_o you_o unhappy_o err_v with_o hooker_n in_o your_o popular_a politic_n if_o you_o think_v that_o the_o law_n bind_v we_o only_o because_o we_o consent_v to_o they_o by_o our_o representative_n or_o that_o as_o such_o they_o make_v they_o whereas_o it_o be_v as_o by_o consent_v in_o the_o constitution_n they_o be_v make_v part_n of_o the_o ruller_n or_o legislator_n and_o not_o mere_o as_o if_o we_o make_v the_o law_n by_o they_o 10._o and_o as_o to_o convocation_n consent_n how_o bind_v it_o all_o those_o that_o never_o consent_v to_o they_o how_o be_v the_o city_n of_o london_n so_o bind_v to_o conform_v when_o they_o have_v not_o one_o choose_a clerk_n but_o only_o the_o dignitaries_n in_o the_o convocation_n that_o make_v we_o our_o conformity_n the_o two_o choose_v by_o they_o be_v refuse_v by_o the_o bishop_n 11._o will_v not_o you_o pass_v for_o a_o asserter_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o independency_n that_o not_o only_o say_v the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o the_o convocation_n represent_v the_o people_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o that_o england_n be_v one_o church_n but_o by_o consent_n without_o consent_v to_o any_o one_o constitutive_a regent_n church_n head_n the_o independent_n be_v for_o a_o national_a church_n mere_o by_o confederacy_n and_o consent_n without_o national_a government_n of_o it_o 12._o you_o go_v further_o from_o the_o episcopal_a politic_n than_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v for_o they_o make_v a_o aristocratical_a regent_n part_n but_o you_o make_v none_o 13._o i_o doubt_v some_o statesman_n will_v be_v angry_a with_o you_o that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o power_n of_o church_n government_n in_o england_n but_o from_o the_o king_n as_o head_n as_o crumpt●●_n before_o cousin_n table_n and_o other_o ordinary_o 14._o do_v you_o make_v england_n in_o essential_o any_o more_o one_o church_n than_o england_n and_o any_o foreigner_n agree_v be_v one_o do_v the_o synod_n of_o d●rt_n make_v we_o one_o with_o they_o do_v large_a council_n make_v many_o nation_n one_o church_n do_v the_o heptarchy_n make_v england_n one_o kingdom_n when_o seven_o king_n govern_v the_o whole_a by_o part_n but_o none_o the_o whole_a as_o such_o 15._o i_o beseech_v you_o think_v what_o you_o have_v do_v against_o the_o parochial_a diocesane_n and_o provincial_a church_n in_o england_n have_v none_o of_o these_o have_v not_o each_o of_o these_o a_o regent_n constitutive_a part_n be_v none_o of_o they_o true_a church_n in_o sensu_fw-la politico_fw-la you_o dare_v not_o say_v no._n if_o they_o be_v you_o have_v say_v that_o visible_a church_n as_o part_n unavoidable_o require_v a_o visible_a head_n to_o the_o whole_a by_o which_o i_o bring_v in_o the_o pope_n because_o you_o think_v christ_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n and_o do_v you_o not_o say_v that_o all_o these_o church_n be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o if_o you_o deny_v it_o to_o have_v one_o regent_n part_n do_v you_o not_o then_o either_o destroy_v the_o rest_n or_o use_v the_o name_n church_n equivocal_o to_o these_o several_a sort_n so_o heterogeneal_a 16._o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v we_o from_o who_o our_o archbishop_n receive_v their_o power_n if_o you_o say_v from_o the_o bishop_n and_o so_o inferior_n or_o equal_n may_v give_v power_n why_o may_v not_o presbyter_n make_v presbyter_n or_o bishop_n and_o generare_fw-la speciem_fw-la if_o it_o must_v come_v from_o superior_n the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v none_o such_o 17._o if_o the_o people_n consent_n can_v make_v a_o national_a church_n why_o may_v it_o not_o make_v a_o independent_a or_o presbyterian_a church_n 18._o if_o the_o nation_n consent_n as_o such_o make_v the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v not_o make_v by_o legislative_a power_n of_o king_n and_o parliament_n 19_o do_v the_o clergy_n represent_v the_o king_n or_o be_v he_o none_o of_o the_o church_n 20._o how_o prove_v you_o that_o the_o
power_n in_o erastus_n sense_n and_o go_v rather_o further_o than_o dr._n still_v fleet_n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la and_o as_o i_o be_v before_o against_o he_o so_o after_o this_o about_o 12_o year_n ago_o i_o write_v that_o book_n against_o he_o about_o the_o magistrate_n power_n in_o church-matter_n in_o which_o i_o call_v he_o my_o sincere_a friend_n think_v sincere_a friendship_n consistent_a with_o such_o a_o difference_n and_o a_o open_a confutation_n and_o if_o the_o contrary_n must_v be_v repent_v of_o i_o hope_v such_o charity_n be_v no_o crime_n this_o three_o book_n against_o he_o also_o he_o take_v patient_o and_o without_o breach_n of_o love_n and_o when_o i_o labour_v to_o persuade_v he_o to_o retract_v his_o write_n against_o excommunication_n though_o he_o hold_v still_o to_o his_o conclusion_n and_o think_v that_o the_o great_a work_n that_o god_n call_v he_o to_o in_o the_o world_n be_v to_o discover_v the_o papal_a and_o prelatical_a usurpation_n of_o the_o magistrate_n power_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ecclesiastical_a yet_o i_o make_v he_o confess_v all_o the_o matter_n that_o i_o plead_v for_o and_o he_o make_v i_o see_v that_o his_o error_n lie_v most_o in_o mere_a ambiguous_a word_n which_o he_o have_v not_o ●…ateness_n enough_o to_o explicate_v all_o this_o patience_n signify_v not_o uncharitableness_n rage_n or_o fury_n and_o i_o oblige_v he_o not_o by_o praise_n but_o 〈…〉_z he_o for_o his_o eagerness_n for_o his_o own_o indigested_a conception_n nor_o give_v he_o any_o thanks_o for_o his_o indiscreet_a and_o excessive_a praise_n afterward_o give_v i_o in_o his_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la upon_o all_o this_o i_o will_v put_v some_o question_n to_o the_o sober_a thought_n of_o the_o author_n of_o his_o picture_n 1._o whether_o there_o be_v not_o as_o great_a sign_n of_o sincerity_n humility_n and_o patience_n in_o such_o a_o behaviour_n and_o in_o that_o great_a love_n which_o he_o have_v to_o all_o that_o he_o think_v godly_a man_n though_o he_o too_o hardly_o judge_v of_o other_o for_o that_o which_o he_o think_v great_a error_n and_o sin_n as_o in_o those_o that_o can_v bear_v a_o just_a defence_n of_o dissenter_n against_o their_o unjust_a accusation_n nor_o endure_v man_n to_o tell_v why_o they_o rather_o suffer_v than_o conform_v 2._o whether_o he_o that_o make_v he_o so_o very_o bad_a a_o man_n such_o and_o incredible_a a_o liar_n for_o too_o rash_a censoriousness_n of_o dissenter_n and_o some_o untruth_n vent_v in_o rash_a zeal_n do_v not_o tempt_v man_n to_o give_v as_o odious_a title_n to_o those_o reverend_a person_n who_o go_v very_o far_o beyond_o he_o in_o untruth_n and_o uncharitable_a censure_n and_o whether_o they_o that_o be_v for_o the_o silence_v and_o utter_a ruine_v of_o about_o 2000_o minister_n and_o call_v to_o magistrate_n to_o execute_v the_o law_n against_o they_o and_o that_o unchurch_n all_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o have_v not_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n show_v not_o as_o much_o uncharitableness_n as_o he_o do_v that_o describe_v some_o too_o hardly_o and_o whether_o most_o of_o the_o book_n write_v against_o i_o by_o conformist_n such_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n letter_n the_o impleader_n mr._n hinkley_n and_o many_o more_o be_v not_o much_o full_a of_o untruth_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n than_o the_o drs_n but_o yet_o i_o think_v it_o a_o sin_n to_o give_v they_o such_o a_o character_n as_o this_o and_o render_v the_o person_n as_o incredible_a liar_n because_o error_n interest_n and_o faction_n make_v some_o so_o unadvised_a 3._o if_o it_o deserve_v such_o a_o character_n to_o censure_v arminian_n as_o dangerous_o erroneous_a and_o befriend_v popery_n whether_o you_o do_v not_o consequent_o so_o stigmatize_v the_o old_a church_n of_o england_n before_o bishop_n laud'_v time_n even_o archbishop_n whitgift_n bishop_n fletcher_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o draw_v up_o the_o lambeth_n article_n archbishop_n abbot_n and_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n except_o six_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n king_n james_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o consent_v by_o six_o delegate_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o also_o that_o synod_n and_o all_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n that_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o be_v not_o this_o more_o than_o dr._n moulin_n do_v 4._o and_o be_v they_o not_o then_o to_o be_v according_o stigmatise_v who_o on_o the_o other_o side_n make_v the_o calvinist_n as_o odious_a accuse_v they_o of_o blasphemy_n turkism_n and_o do_v as_o much_o against_o they_o as_o dr._n heylin_n in_o the_o life_n of_o archbishop_n laud_n tell_v we_o be_v do_v in_o england_n on_o that_o account_n 5._o and_o if_o such_o hard_a thought_n of_o arminian_n as_o further_a popery_n deserve_v your_o character_n whether_o by_o consequence_n you_o so_o brand_v not_o all_o those_o parliament_n who_o vote_v against_o it_o according_o and_o make_v it_o one_o of_o the_o dangerous_a grievance_n of_o the_o land_n and_o be_v not_o that_o as_o faulty_a as_o for_o dr._n moulin_n too_o much_o to_o blame_v you_o 6._o yea_o i_o doubt_v you_o stigmatize_v thus_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o mention_v so_o rare_a be_v it_o to_o hear_v of_o any_o country_n where_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o guilty_a of_o sect_n and_o faction_n as_o by_o education_n and_o interest_n to_o run_v in_o a_o stream_n of_o uncharitable_a censure_n of_o one_o another_o speak_v evil_a of_o more_o than_o they_o understand_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o my_o cathol_n theolog._n about_o this_o subject_n 7._o see_v it_o be_v above_o 20_o year_n since_o i_o write_v that_o against_o dr._n moulin_n which_o you_o cite_v and_o he_o never_o find_v fault_n with_o it_o nor_o justify_v his_o mistake_n may_v i_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v convince_v and_o repent_v and_o you_o that_o praise_v his_o deathbed_n repentance_n shall_v not_o characterise_v he_o by_o fail_n twenty_o year_n repent_v of_o 8._o how_o do_v you_o know_v that_o the_o dr._n repent_v not_o of_o his_o too_o hard_a word_n of_o you_o till_o his_o deathbed_n you_o be_v mistake_v in_o his_o health_n i_o more_o than_o once_o blame_v he_o 1._o for_o his_o censure_n of_o dr._n stillingfleet_n and_o the_o other_o particular_a person_n who_o worth_n be_v know_v and_o have_v deserve_v well_o of_o the_o protestant_a church_n 2._o for_o his_o extend_v those_o censure_n to_o the_o conformist_n and_o church_n which_o belong_v to_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o the_o most_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o and_o 3._o for_o his_o book_n of_o the_o fewness_n of_o the_o save_v as_o presumptuous_a and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v then_o discern_v he_o repent_v of_o they_o all_o but_o lay_v the_o ill_a title-page_n of_o the_o last_o on_o the_o bookseller_n and_o he_o still_o think_v of_o cause_n and_o party_n as_o very_o different_a he_o own_v not_o his_o harsh_a word_n or_o censure_n aforesaid_a i_o find_v he_o not_o rage_v nor_o impenitent_a 9_o do_v not_o your_o own_o description_n of_o his_o great_a readiness_n to_o beg_v forgiveness_n and_o lothness_n to_o own_o any_o thing_n uncharitable_a show_v a_o better_a spirit_n than_o your_o picture_n do_v describe_v 10._o be_v not_o he_o as_o like_a to_o be_v a_o sincere_a man_n who_o ask_v forgiveness_n of_o his_o fault_n rash_a censure_n and_o word_n as_o he_o that_o repent_v of_o his_o former_a duty_n his_o pacificatory_a principle_n and_o write_n sure_o to_o repent_v of_o evil_n be_v a_o better_a sign_n than_o to_o repent_v of_o good_a 11._o because_o you_o call_v we_o to_o acquit_v ourselves_o by_o disow_v dr._n moulin_n may_v we_o not_o disow_v both_o his_o fault_n and_o our_o own_o without_o disow_v god_n grace_n and_o man_n piety_n and_o worth_n will_v you_o be_v so_o disow_v for_o your_o own_o fault_n 2._o and_o how_o shall_v i_o disow_v his_o rashness_n better_o than_o to_o write_v what_o i_o write_v against_o he_o and_o say_v what_o i_o say_v to_o he_o will_v you_o have_v a_o synod_n call_v to_o reprove_v every_o rash_a word_n 12._o because_o you_o just_o value_v man_n repentance_n i_o will_v be_v thankful_a to_o you_o to_o further_a i_o and_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o further_a you_o only_o i_o foretell_v you_o that_o your_o word_n shall_v not_o offend_v i_o by_o their_o hardness_n if_o they_o have_v but_o truth_n and_o you_o call_v i_o to_o repent_v of_o my_o sin_n and_o not_o of_o serve_v god_n i_o do_v not_o repent_v of_o defend_v truth_n and_o duty_n nor_o of_o seek_v to_o save_v the_o reader_n from_o the_o infection_n of_o false_a accusation_n and_o arguing_n which_o will_v destroy_v his_o charity_n and_o innocency_n by_o the_o full_a manifest_v the_o falsehood_n and_o evil_n of_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n
i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o wrong_n to_o those_o that_o i_o will_v preserve_v to_o extenuate_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o snare_n or_o poison_n on_o pretence_n of_o gentleness_n to_o the_o writer_n but_o i_o deal_v with_o the_o cause_n and_o desire_v none_o to_o hate_v the_o person_n nor_o will_v i_o diminish_v the_o honour_n due_a to_o he_o for_o his_o part_n or_o virtue_n but_o rather_o have_v all_o man_n love_v and_o magnify_v all_o the_o good_a while_o they_o dislike_v the_o evil_a and_o will_v save_v the_o reader_n at_o as_o easy_a a_o rate_n to_o the_o writer_n as_o i_o can_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v relate_v to_o his_o false_a or_o sinful_a word_n or_o deed_n be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o effect_v but_o though_o i_o repent_v not_o of_o necessary_a truth_n if_o i_o any_o where_o mistake_n or_o speak_v more_o truth_n than_o be_v profitable_a or_o in_o language_n by_o sharpness_n more_o apt_a to_o do_v hurt_v than_o good_a of_o this_o i_o repent_v and_o ask_v forgiveness_n of_o god_n and_o man_n as_o i_o do_v if_o i_o speak_v so_o short_a of_o truth_n as_o with_o eli_n to_o make_v sin_n seem_v small_a than_o it_o be_v and_o now_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v love_v your_o own_o duty_n of_o repentance_n better_o than_o another_o man_n and_o will_v not_o be_v angry_a if_o i_o seek_v to_o help_v it_o 1._o do_v you_o not_o perceive_v that_o while_o you_o paint_v the_o dr._n as_o a_o incredible_a rage_a distract_a liar_n and_o praise_v his_o repentance_n for_o rash_a word_n of_o other_o that_o you_o commit_v the_o same_o rashness_n yourself_o against_o he_o if_o you_o can_v see_v your_o own_o face_n let_v any_o impartial_a reader_n be_v your_o glass_n and_o ask_v he_o whether_o you_o do_v not_o that_o which_o you_o be_v condemn_v 2._o you_o seem_v to_o vindicate_v the_o book_n call_v the_o friendly_a debate_n i_o shall_v short_o further_o tell_v you_o of_o somewhat_o in_o it_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o and_o if_o partiality_n make_v not_o repentance_n a_o very_a difficult_a work_n you_o will_v have_v no_o need_n herein_o of_o a_o monitor_n but_o you_o may_v think_v i_o partial_a though_o i_o acknowledge_v your_o civility_n to_o i_o i_o can_v show_v you_o a_o manuscript_n of_o one_o both_o impartial_a and_o true_o judicious_a even_o the_o late_a judge_n hale_n express_v so_o great_a dislike_n of_o that_o debate_n and_o the_o eccl._n policy_n as_o tend_v to_o the_o injury_n of_o religion_n itself_o that_o he_o wish_v the_o author_n will_v open_o profess_v that_o they_o write_v for_o themselves_o and_o no_o more_o so_o abusive_o pretend_v it_o be_v for_o religion_n 3._o you_o say_v in_o this_o picture_n that_o if_o l._n du_fw-fr moulin_n have_v that_o honest_a zeal_n in_o he_o to_o which_o he_o pretend_v he_o will_v have_v handle_v mr._n baxter_n as_o smart_o etc._n etc._n answ_n there_o may_v be_v other_o reason_n than_o want_v of_o honest_a zeal_n but_o do_v you_o not_o here_o show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o person_n more_o than_o his_o act_n that_o offend_v you_o in_o his_o reproof_n can_v you_o judge_v it_o honest_a zeal_n have_v it_o be_v to_o other_o pag._n 16._o 4._o you_o say_v p._n 17._o he_o have_v something_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n in_o he_o and_o for_o that_o reason_n he_o spare_v he_o answ_n do_v not_o nonconformist_n differ_v from_o erastians_n do_v not_o i_o write_v against_o his_o opinion_n of_o church-government_n and_o do_v he_o not_o bear_v 22_o year_n ago_o when_o conformity_n be_v not_o in_o our_o controversy_n 5._o you_o say_v of_o the_o party_n that_o come_v near_a the_o doctrine_n of_o calvinist_n and_o puritan_n though_o you_o say_v you_o mean_v such_o as_o d._n m._n your_o reader_n must_v suppose_v you_o mean_v the_o nonconformist_n that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o our_o present_a evil_n for_o the_o late_a war_n be_v raise_v by_o the_o very_o best_a of_o you_o etc._n etc._n if_o you_o mean_v as_o you_o seem_v it_o be_v somewhat_o extraordinary_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v this_o in_o the_o same_o land_n and_o age_n that_o the_o war_n be_v raise_v in_o and_o for_o one_o to_o do_v this_o that_o have_v the_o first_o general_n of_o the_o horse_n in_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n army_n his_o patron_n a_o few_o door_n from_o he_o and_o the_o lord_n hollis_n a_o colonel_n near_o he_o till_o late_o and_o the_o lord_n precedent_n of_o his_o majesty_n privy-council_n a_o colonel_n not_o far_o off_o he_o and_o many_o more_o know_v conformist_n who_o can_v all_o quick_o have_v satisfy_v he_o how_o few_o nonconformist_n be_v member_n of_o parliament_n or_o commander_n in_o the_o army_n when_o the_o war_n begin_v and_o that_o it_o be_v betwnen_n two_o party_n of_o conformist_n that_o the_o war_n begin_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v against_o mr._n hinkley_n and_o can_v fullier_n do_v when_o there_o be_v need_n which_o party_n be_v most_o oblige_v to_o repentance_n you_o may_v dispute_v with_o those_o that_o be_v fit_a for_o it_o but_o if_o your_o intimation_n be_v untrue_a it_o be_v of_o another_o nature_n and_o degree_n than_o any_o of_o dr._n moulins_n i_o confess_v one_o party_n do_v in_o many_o parliament_n before_o and_o in_o that_o accuse_v bishop_n laud_n and_o his_o new_a follower_n 1._o of_o innovation_n 2._o of_o arminianism_n 3._o of_o promote_a absolute_a arbitrary_a government_n against_o the_o subject_n property_n and_o liberty_n 4._o and_o of_o promote_a popery_n but_o if_o this_o party_n be_v not_o conformist_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o bishop_n clergy_n and_o gentry_n be_v not_o the_o church_n in_o archbishop_n abbot_n day_n before_o bishop_n laud._n as_o to_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o accusation_n and_o the_o publish_v the_o article_n for_o toleration_n in_o order_n to_o the_o sp._n and_o fr._n match_n etc._n etc._n i_o pass_v they_o by_o but_o because_o you_o may_v say_v some_o such_o think_v of_o i_o as_o you_o do_v of_o d._n m._n for_o what_o i_o say_v in_o my_o search_n for_o the_o schismatic_n i_o only_o add_v 1._o that_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v transcribe_v man_n own_a word_n 2._o and_o may_v judge_v that_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n between_o the_o bishop_n that_o judge_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n etc._n etc._n and_o those_o that_o will_v have_v we_o as_o the_o way_n to_o unity_n to_o obey_v he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la and_o the_o first_o 6_o or_o 8_o general_a council_n and_o that_o say_v our_o concord_n must_v be_v in_o obey_v unum_fw-la collegium_fw-la pastorum_fw-la rule_v the_o whole_a church_n per_fw-la literas_fw-la formatas_fw-la and_o that_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n but_o so_o be_v none_o of_o the_o reform_a that_o have_v not_o bishop_n and_o a_o continue_a successive_a ordination_n by_o such_o a_o copy_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o mr._n lewis_n du_n moulin_n to_o the_o worthy_a dr._n tho._n cox_n with_o the_o drs._n answer_v occasion_v by_o some_o report_n that_o concern_v dr._n lewis_n du_n moulin_n worthy_a sir_n know_v the_o natural_a inclination_n you_o have_v to_o oblige_v all_o man_n and_o the_o particular_a experience_n i_o have_v of_o your_o unwearied_a goodness_n to_o my_o person_n and_o family_n do_v encourage_v i_o to_o write_v both_o before_o and_o now_o the_o occasion_n of_o both_o be_v the_o report_n spread_v abroad_o of_o my_o father_n be_v inform_v you_o have_v make_v he_o the_o object_n of_o your_o care_n during_o his_o sickness_n i_o rejoice_v that_o providence_n have_v order_v it_o so_o that_o a_o person_n of_o your_o approve_a worth_n and_o integrity_n be_v concern_v about_o he_o i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o the_o relation_n fame_n have_v bring_v into_o this_o country_n but_o shall_v only_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o he_o die_v be_v there_o any_o advantage_n take_v of_o his_o weakness_n of_o body_n or_o mind_n how_o far_o do_v his_o report_a recantation_n extend_v reach_v it_o to_o any_o material_a thing_n of_o his_o tenet_n or_o only_o in_o reference_n to_o personal_a reflection_n this_o be_v what_o be_v humble_o desire_v by_o honour_a sir_n your_o most_o humble_a and_o oblige_a servant_n lewis_n du_n moulin_n from_o my_o house_n at_o malton_n in_o yorkshire_n october_n the_o seven_o 1680._o the_o drs._n answer_v to_o mr._n lewis_n du_n moulin_n sir_n i_o have_v not_o delay_v to_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o letter_n have_v i_o know_v how_o to_o direct_v i_o to_o you_o which_o indeed_o i_o have_v forget_v how_o to_o do_v this_o be_v therefore_o to_o let_v you_o know_v that_o your_o father_n my_o honourèd_v friend_n dr._n du_n moulin_n die_v as_o he_o have_v live_v a_o true_o pious_a man_n a_o great_a hater_n of_o the_o romish_a superstition_n and_o of_o so_o
some_o excess_n of_o kindness_n to_o i_o v._o with_o this_o defence_n against_o doctor_n stillingfleet_n i_o at_o once_o pubblish_v in_o another_o volume_n a_o apology_n for_o the_o nonconfirmists_n preach_v with_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o accuser_n and_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o conformist_n great_a duty_n and_o interest_n to_o seek_v their_o restoration_n which_o be_v the_o most_o material_a part_n of_o the_o confutation_n of_o doctor_n stillingfleet_n who_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o our_o preach_a be_v a_o sin_n and_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o silence_v ourselves_o finis_fw-la book_n late_o print_v for_o nevil_n simmons_n ●●_o the_o three_o cock_n at_o the_o west_n and_o of_o st._n paul_n 1._o church-history_n of_o the_o government_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o council_n abbreviate_v including_n the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o pope_n and_o a_o true_a account_n of_o the_o most_o trouble_v controversy_n and_o heresy_n till_o the_o reformation_n write_a for_o the_o use_n especial_o of_o they_o 1._o who_o be_v ignorant_a or_o misinform_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 2._o who_o can_v read_v many_o and_o great_a volume_n 3._o who_o think_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n must_v have_v one_o visible_a sovereign_n personal_a or_o collective_a pope_n or_o general_n council_n 4._o who_o will_v know_v whether_o patriarch_n diocesan_n and_o their_o council_n have_v be_v or_o must_v be_v the_o cure_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n 5._o who_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n about_o the_o great_a heresy_n which_o have_v divide_v the_o christian_a world_n especial_o the_o donatist_n novatian_n arian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o monothelite_n etc._n etc._n 2._o a_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n confute_v by_o scripture_n reason_n and_o the_o church_n testimony_n that_o sort_n of_o diocesan_n church_n prelacy_n and_o government_n which_o cast_v out_o the_o primitive_a church_n species_n episcopacy_n ministry_n and_o discipline_n and_o confound_v the_o christian_a world_n by_o corruption_n usurpation_n schism_n and_o persecution_n meditate_a in_o the_o year_n 1640_o when_o the_o etcetera_a oath_n be_v impose_v write_a 1671._o and_o cast_v by_o publish_a 1680._o by_o the_o importunity_n of_o our_o superior_n who_o demand_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o nonconformity_n 3._o a_o moral_a prognostication_n 1._o what_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n on_o earth_n till_o their_o concord_n by_o the_o restitution_n of_o their_o primitive_a purity_n simplicity_n and_o charity_n 2._o how_o that_o restitution_n be_v like_a to_o be_v make_v if_o ever_o and_o what_o shall_v befall_v they_o thenceforth_o unto_o the_o end_n in_o that_o golden_a age_n of_o love_n all_o three_o by_o rich._n baxter_n 4._o memorabilia_fw-la or_o the_o most_o remarkable_a passage_n and_o counsel_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o several_a declaration_n and_o speech_n that_o have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o king_n his_o lord-chancellor_n and_o keeper_n and_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o honourable_a house_n of_o commons_o in_o parliament_n since_o his_o majesty_n happy_a restauration_n anno_fw-la 1660._o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o parliament_n 1680._o reduce_v under_o four_o head_n 1._o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n 2._o of_o popery_n 3._o of_o liberty_n and_o property_n etc._n etc._n 4._o of_o parliament_n by_o edward_n cook_n of_o the_o middle_a temple_n esq_n reader_n i_o must_v take_v this_o opportunity_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o mistake_n to_o give_v thou_o notice_n that_o whereas_o against_o they_o that_o plead_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n i_o have_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o my_o book_n for_o universal_a concord_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o my_o breviate_v of_o church-history_n say_v that_o our_o northern_a english_a episcopacy_n be_v derive_v from_o such_o as_o be_v no_o bishop_n but_o scottish_a monk_n and_o presbyter_n and_o that_o aidan_n and_o finan_n tromhere_o coleman_n be_v such_o lest_o i_o be_v misunderstand_v i_o must_v further_o explain_v my_o meaning_n viz._n 1._o the_o culdee_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n first_o guide_v the_o affair_n of_o religion_n in_o scotland_n long_o before_o the_o come_n of_o palladius_n 2._o these_o culdee_n choose_v themselves_o for_o order_n sake_n some_o few_o to_o be_v as_o guide_n and_o governorus_n to_o the_o rest_n who_o writer_n call_v scotorum_fw-la episcopos_fw-la but_o be_v no_o bishop_n in_o our_o controvert_v sense_n but_o as_o a_o abbot_n among_o monk_n and_o as_o the_o precedent_n or_o principal_n of_o college_n rule_v those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o office_n or_o order_n with_o they_o nor_o have_v they_o any_o limit_a fix_a diocese_n 3._o and_o if_o any_o will_v call_v these_o bishop_n and_o the_o question_n be_v but_o de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la let_v they_o call_v they_o so_o and_o spare_v not_o i_o contend_v not_o against_o they_o 4._o afterward_o palladius_n send_v from_o rome_n begin_v a_o high_a sort_n of_o bishop_n but_o the_o culdee_n still_o keep_v up_o the_o great_a part_n against_o he_o 5._o columbanus_n his_o monastery_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o hylas_n restore_v the_o culdee_n strength_n and_o the_o monk_n out_o of_o that_o island_n be_v the_o most_o prevail_a clergy_n of_o scotland_n who_o have_v no_o proper_a episcopal_a ordination_n or_o if_o you_o will_v call_v their_o ordainer_n bishop_n they_o be_v not_o only_a ejusdem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la with_o the_o presbyter_n but_o also_o not_o ordain_v by_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o make_v such_o by_o mission_n from_o the_o monastery_n and_o bare_a election_n and_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n 6._o out_o of_o this_o famous_a holy_a monastery_n be_v aidan_n first_o and_o finan_n after_o and_o tromhere_o etc._n etc._n and_o coleman_n after_o send_v into_o northumberland_n where_o they_o aresaid_a to_o be_v make_v bishop_n and_o they_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n that_o come_v thither_o and_o so_o have_v no_o ordination_n in_o england_n from_o any_o bishop_n that_o be_v there_o before_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o probability_n that_o the_o palladian_a bishop_n do_v ordain_v they_o bishop_n but_o that_o their_o own_o order_n of_o senior_n monk_n and_o presbyter_n only_o ordain_v they_o 7._o beda_n be_v such_o a_o votary_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o his_o testimony_n run_v more_o for_o the_o romish_a interest_n than_o most_o of_o the_o scottish_a or_o english_a historian_n of_o those_o time_n yet_o lib._n 3._o c._n 5._o say_v of_o aidan_n but_o that_o his_o approbation_n be_v in_o conventu_fw-la seniorum_fw-la and_o sic_fw-la illum_fw-la ordinantes_fw-la ad_fw-la praedicandum_fw-la miserunt_fw-la and_o c._n 25._o that_o finan_n pro_fw-la illo_fw-la gradum_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la a_o scots_a ordinatus_fw-la &_o missus_fw-la acceperat_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o insula_fw-la lindisfarnensi_fw-la secit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la episcopali_fw-la sedi_fw-la congruam_fw-la quam_fw-la tamen_fw-la more_fw-it scottorum_fw-la uno_fw-la de_fw-la lapide_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la robore_fw-la secto_fw-la totam_fw-la composuit_fw-la &_o arundine_fw-la ●exit_fw-la et_fw-la defuncto_fw-la finano_n qui_fw-la post_fw-la ipsum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la cum_fw-la colmannus_fw-la in_o episcopain_n suc●ederet_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la missus_fw-la a_o scotia_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o king_n oswi_n himself_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o scot_n and_o be_v of_o their_o language_n and_o for_o their_o way_n and_o cedda_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o scot_n and_o at_o a_o synod_n three_o or_o four_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o bishop_n with_o the_o king_n and_o his_o son_n and_o hilda_n a_o woman_n abbess_n be_v the_o company_n that_o make_v it_o c._n 25._o and_o c._n 26._o tuda_n also_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o scot_n and_o c._n 4._o the_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o abbot_n juxta_fw-la exemplum_fw-la primi_fw-la doctoris_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sed_fw-la presbyter_n extitit_fw-la et_fw-la monachus_n 8._o li._n 3._o c._n 28._o he_o say_v that_o non_fw-la erat_fw-la tune_n ullus_fw-la excepto_fw-la wini_fw-la in_o totâ_fw-la britania_n canoniee_n ordinatus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la 9_o and_o as_o there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v the_o palladian_a roman_a bishop_n that_o ordain_v these_o northumbrian_n bishop_n so_o there_o be_v enough_o to_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o all_o these_o foresay_a bishop_n continue_v the_o stiff_a enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a power_n and_o order_n which_o palladius_n come_v to_o introduce_v insomuch_o that_o beda_n oft_o mention_v their_o utter_a aversion_n to_o the_o roman_a party_n and_o that_o the_o briton_n and_o scot_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n and_o daganus_n and_o the_o rest_n will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v with_o the_o romanist_n no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v in_o the_o same_o house_n or_o inn_n with_o they_o lib._n 2._o c._n 4._o 10._o and_o last_o even_o that_o sort_n of_o episcopacy_n which_o they_o take_v in_o northumberland_n be_v but_o equivocal_o so_o call_v as_o to_o that_o which_o we_o dispute_v about_o and_o not_o ejusdem_fw-la speciei_fw-la for._n 1._o they_o never_o pretend_v to_o a_o distinct_a order_n from_o the_o presbyter_n 2._o they_o have_v but_o one_o poor_a church_n make_v of_o wood_n and_o thatch_a with_o reed_n and_o no_o possession_n else_o and_o from_o the●●e_n they_o go_v from_o village_n to_o village_n to_o instruct_v convert_v and_o pray_v with_o the_o people_n and_o that_o our_o english_a episcopacy●eri●eth_v ●eri●eth_z its_o succession_n from_o these_o scot_n and_o the_o brittaine●_n and_o not_o from_o rome_n by_o augustine_n and_o palladius_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o mr._n jones_n and_o to_o the_o preface_n before_o knox_n his_o church-history_n thus_o much_o i_o think_v needful_a to_o prevent_v be_v misunderstand_v about_o the_o episcopacy_n of_o aidan_n 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n such_o a_o episcopacy_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n plead_v the_o for_o in_o his_o naked_a truth_n i_o meet_v with_o few_o that_o be_v against_o any_o more_o than_o that_o the_o college_n of_o physician_n or_o philosopher_n or_o divine_n have_v ●_o precedent_n finis_fw-la finis_fw-la the_o new_a church_n since_o bishop_n laud'_v change_v change_v note_v that_o the_o bishop_n book_n as_o against_o i_o run_v upon_o a_o mere_a fiction_n p._n 76._o that_o i_o traduce_v he_o as_o a_o factor_n for_o popery_n when_o i_o have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o that_o purpose_n yea_o express_o except_v he_o by_o name_n though_o i_o argue_v against_o his_o too_o near_a approach_n approach_n no_o such_o thing_n but_o of_o the_o church_n within_o the_o empire_n then_o then_o be_v there_o no_o necessary_a cause_n till_o after_o an._n 1200_o 1200_o so_o then_o these_o protestant_a bishop_n give_v the_o pope_n patriarchal_a power_n and_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o as_o much_o as_o the_o greek_n but_o 1._o they_o have_v by_o council_n of_o old_a no_o patriarchal_a power_n over_o other_o kingdom_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n 2._o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o patriarch_n be_v against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o on_o the_o matter_n little_o differ_v our_o case_n from_o obey_v he_o as_o pope_n pope_n so_o that_o this_o archbishop_n also_o be_v set_v on_o the_o pious_a design_n of_o join_v with_o the_o papist_n on_o these_o term_n and_o may_v not_o we_o have_v leave_v to_o worship_n god_n on_o better_a term_n term_n that_o be_v 1._o the_o pope_n be_v not_o to_o govern_v we_o arbitrary_o but_o by_o canon_n which_o what_o they_o be_v be_v hardly_o know_v 2._o and_o all_o will_v be_v schismatic_n that_o so_o obey_v he_o not_o not_o 1._o thus_o for_o union_n with_o rome_n all_o protestant_n must_v pass_v for_o self_n make_v schismatic_n that_o can_v obey_v the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n and_o do_v this_o tend_v indeed_o to_o concord_n it_o will_v open_v protestant_n eye_n do_v i_o but_o tell_v you_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o canon_n which_o the_o pope_n as_o our_o patriarch_n must_v rule_v we_o by_o as_o these_o doctor_n do_v desire_v desire_v 1._o if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a no_o wonder_n that_o mr._n thorndike_n think_v we_o can_v not_o justify_v our_o reformation_n till_o we_o alter_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n then_o we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o a_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n 2._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v many_o great_a error_n and_o sin_n to_o be_v decree_v by_o many_o of_o the_o council_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n must_v rule_v we_o all_o 3._o be_v it_o any_o easy_a to_o do_v evil_a in_o obedience_n to_o a_o patriarch_n than_o a_o pope_n 4._o in_o my_o last_o book_n against_o w._n johnson_n alias_o tenet_n i_o have_v full_o confute_v all_o that_o he_o say_v of_o the_o universality_n of_o council_n and_o the_o patriarch_n power_n over_o the_o abassine_n and_o other_o without_o the_o empire_n and_o show_v they_o be_v then_o all_o but_o in_o one_o empire_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n ☜_o page_n 22._o a_o vain_a writer_n and_o malicious_a if_o not_o mad_a and_o distract_a p._n 11._o he_o will_v magnify_v the_o very_o worst_a of_o man_n if_o they_o be_v of_o his_o mind_n and_o vilify_v the_o best_a if_o they_o be_v of_o another_o p._n 27._o he_o have_v full_a liberty_n to_o vie_v with_o the_o devil_n himself_o in_o his_o calumny_n with_o more_o such_o
total_a and_o positive_a separation_n be_v lawful_a and_o convenient_a p._n 117._o where_o any_o church_n retain_v purity_n of_o doctrine_n do_v require_v the_o own_n of_o and_o conform_v to_o any_o unlawful_a or_o suspect_v practice_n man_n may_v lawful_o deny_v conformity_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o that_o church_n in_o such_o thing_n without_o incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n p._n 119._o let_v man_n turn_v and_o wind_n themselves_o which_o way_n they_o will_v by_o the_o very_a same_o argument_n that_o any_o will_v prove_v separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n lawful_a because_o she_o require_v unlawful_a thing_n as_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n it_o will_v be_v prove_v lawful_a not_o to_o conform_v to_o any_o suspect_v or_o unlawful_a practice_n &_o c._n they_o lay_v the_o imputation_n of_o schism_n on_o all_o they_o who_o require_v such_o condition_n of_o communion_n and_o take_v it_o whole_o off_o from_o those_o who_o refuse_v to_o conform_v for_o conscience_n sake_n a_o premise_v explication_n of_o the_o equivocal_a word_n church_n the_o word_n church_n be_v equivocal_a be_v unfit_a for_o our_o disputation_n till_o explain_v it_o signify_v be_v a_o relative_n several_a sort_n of_o relate_a assembly_n which_o be_v distinct_a i._o in_o their_o matter_n a_o church_n of_o jew_n turk_n christian_n of_o orthodox_n and_o of_o heretic_n be_v not_o one_o thing_n ii_o in_o the_o efficient_a a_o church_n of_o god_n institute_v or_o a_o church_n of_o man_n iii_o in_o the_o fnds._n 1_o a_o christian_a assembly_n at_o a_o fair_a or_o market_n or_o court_n or_o army_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o a_o assembly_n for_o religious_a exercise_n 2._o nor_o a_o assembly_n for_o legislation_n about_o religion_n in_o parliament_n or_o consultation_n in_o synod_n or_o disputation_n in_o school_n the_o same_o thing_n as_o a_o assembly_n for_o state_v worship_n etc._n etc._n iv._o in_o the_o form_n or_o constitutive_a relation_n to_o the_o correlate_n and_o so_o the_o great_a difference_n which_o now_o concern_v we_o to_o note_n be_v that_o a_o church_n of_o equal_n in_o office_n and_o power_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o a_o political_a society_n relate_v as_o governor_n and_o govern_v be_v another_o the_o first_o be_v either_o a_o accidental_a assembly_n or_o else_o a_o design_a assemby_n by_o consent_n this_o last_o be_v either_o a_o assembly_n of_o layman_n which_o may_v be_v agree_v hereafter_o to_o come_v under_o government_n and_o may_v meet_v to_o worship_n god_n without_o a_o pastor_n and_o this_o in_o politic_n be_v usual_o call_v a_o mere_a community_n 2._o or_o a_o assembly_n of_o ruler_n or_o pastor_n in_o equality_n as_o to_o government_n there_o and_o this_o be_v call_v a_o council_n synod_n diet_n parliament_n convention_n etc._n etc._n v._o a_o govern_v or_o political_a church_n be_v of_o three_o several_a species_n at_o least_o as_o there_o be_v three_o species_n of_o such_o government_n i._o a_o christian_a family_n consist_v of_o the_o family-government_n and_o govern_v live_v together_o in_o holy_a faith_n love_n worship_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n the_o master_n be_v their_o teacher_n ruler_n and_o guide_v in_o worship_n ii_o a_o pastoral-church_n consist_v of_o one_o or_o more_o pastor_n and_o christian_a people_n correlated_a as_o his_o flock_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o pastoral_a office_n which_o essential_o contain_v a_o power_n to_o teach_v they_o lead_v they_o in_o worship_n and_o govern_v they_o by_o the_o key_n as_o a_o ministerial_a judge_n who_o be_v fit_a for_o that_o commmunion_n all_o together_o be_v call_v also_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o be_v subordinate_a to_o christ_n teach_v priestly_n and_o rule_v office_n iii_o a_o royal_a or_o magistratical_a church_n consist_v of_o a_o christian_a sovereign_a and_o christian_a subject_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o his_o sword_n or_o force_v power_n under_o christ_n and_o his_o law_n for_o the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a welfare_n of_o the_o society_n and_o the_o glorify_v and_o please_v the_o lord_n redeemer_n and_o iv._o the_o universal_a church_n comprehend_v all_o these_o three_o as_o part_n and_o be_v most_o excellent_o proper_o and_o full_o call_v the_o church_n consist_v of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o chief_a pastor_n teacher_n priest_n and_o king_n a_o eminent_a perfect_a policy_n with_o all_o christian_n as_o the_o subject_a part_n it_o be_v visible_a in_o that_o the_o subject_n and_o their_o profession_n and_o worship_n be_v visible_a aod_a christ_n be_v visible_a on_o earth_n be_v visible_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n his_o law_n and_o providence_n be_v visible_a and_o he_o will_v visible_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o reign_v for_o ever_o and_o it_o be_v no_o further_o visible_a the_o constitutive_a essential_a part_n be_v only_a christ_n and_o his_o subject-body_n the_o noble_a organical_a part_n of_o that_o body_n be_v prophet_n apostle_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o all_o this_o note_z 1._o that_o we_o have_v no_o difference_n that_o i_o know_v of_o about_o the_o church_n in_o any_o of_o these_o sense_n before_o mention_v except_o 1._o how_o far_o man_n may_v invent_v church-form_n for_o god_n service_n without_o god_n particular_a prescript_n or_o institution_n 2._o whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o king_n be_v so_o persona_fw-la mixta_fw-la as_o some_o hold_n as_o to_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n and_o to_o have_v the_o power_n of_o church-key_n and_o word_n and_o sacrament_n 3._o whether_o over_o and_o above_o the_o low_a pastoral_n church_n christ_n have_v institute_v a_o direct_a superior_a pastoral_n sort_n of_o church_n to_o rule_v the_o inferior_a in_o faith_n worship_n and_o the_o key_n of_o discipline_n over_o pastor_n and_o people_n and_o if_o so_o what_o be_v these_o superior_a pastoral_n church_n wh●ther_o diocesan_n provincial_a national_a patriarchal_a papal_a or_o all_o and_o if_o christ_n make_v no_o such_o whether_o man_n may_v make_v they_o 2._o and_o note_v that_o we_o be_v certain_o agree_v that_o the_o magistratical_a form_n of_o force_a power_n and_o the_o pastoral_a form_n of_o sacerdotal_a power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v two_o though_o the_o subject_n shall_v be_v the_o same_o though_o usual_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o commonwealth_n as_o part_v and_o none_o of_o we_o deny_v a_o christian_a commonwealth_n monarchical_a aristocratical_a or_o democratical_a and_o though_o this_o power_n be_v over_o the_o pastoral_n church_n it_o be_v but_o accidental_a and_o not_o essential_a to_o it_o 3._o and_o note_v that_o the_o chief_a question_n which_o i_o put_v to_o the_o dr._n about_o this_o be_v 1._o what_o be_v the_o pastoral_n specify_v form_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o 2._o whether_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a or_o humane_a institution_n and_o i_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o church_n of_o england_n at_o all_o and_o of_o the_o royal_a church_n or_o kingdom_n we_o be_v member_n as_o well_o as_o he_o 4._o and_o last_o note_v that_o as_o to_o a_o pastoral_n church_n we_o agree_v i_o suppose_v in_o distinguish_v a_o transient_a and_o a_o fix_a relation_n and_o as_o he_o that_o be_v a_o license_v physician_n act_v as_o such_o where_o he_o come_v though_o relate_v fix_o to_o no_o hospital_n so_o if_o a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o christ_n either_o fix_v in_o another_o church_n or_o in_o none_o but_o the_o universal_a be_v call_v pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la for_o a_o day_n to_o do_v his_o office_n in_o another_o church_n he_o act_v as_o christ_n minister_n and_o their_o pastor_n for_o that_o day●_n and_o if_o a_o travel_a christian_a join_v with_o they_o he_o be_v a_o member_n for_o that_o day_n yea_o if_o the_o whole_a company_n intend_v to_o meet_v but_o that_o one_o day_n in_o the_o same_o relation_n to_o the_o same_o end_n it_o be_v a_o temporary_a transient_a pastoral_n church_n but_o fix_a inhabitant_n for_o order_n and_o edification_n aught_o to_o fix_v their_o relation_n and_o practice_n though_o most_o of_o this_o be_v say_v after_o where_o he_o call_v i_o to_o it_o i_o think_v meet_v here_o to_o premise_v the_o explication_n of_o the_o word_n church_n as_o in_o divers_a book_n large_o i_o have_v do_v of_o the_o word_n separation_n lest_o i_o imitate_v he_o in_o leave_v my_o explication_n to_o the_o hinder_a part_n and_o we_o shall_v dispute_v about_o a_o word_n which_o the_o reader_n and_o perhaps_o ourselves_o understand_v not_o but_o we_o have_v a_o great_a controversy_n than_o this_o rise_v since_o a._n bishop_n laud'_v and_o grotius_n reconcile_a design_n five_o z._n what_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n be_v 1._o protestant_n have_v hitherto_o hold_v as_o the_o first_o point_n of_o difference_n from_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v no_o constitutive_a head_n or_o supreme_a regent_n power_n but_o christ_n he_o have_v settle_v no_o one_o
vicarious_a or_o depute_a supreme_a monarchical_a aristocratical_a or_o democratical_a 2._o according_o they_o note_v the_o difference_n of_o two_o sort_n of_o papist_n some_o that_o set_v the_o pope_n as_o superior_a above_o council_n other_o as_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o the_o french_a that_o make_v the_o general_n council_n supreme_a the_o pope_n be_v precedent_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o have_v many_o privilege_n as_o primate_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n 3._o but_o that_o in_o truth_n the_o catholic_n govern_v power_n of_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o four_o patriarch_n be_v but_o a_o humane_a form_n of_o church_n policy_n settle_v in_o one_o empire_n as_o a_o national_a kind_n of_o church_n and_o the_o council_n be_v universal_a as_o to_o the_o empire_n but_o not_o to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o i_o have_v prove_v against_o w._n johnson_n full_o call_v by_o the_o emperor_n that_o have_v no_o power_n over_o other_o nation_n and_o subscribe_v by_o his_o subject_n 4._o that_o the_o grand_a cheat_n that_o have_v set_v up_o popery_n be_v the_o turn_v this_o national_a church_n into_o a_o universal_a government_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o pretend_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n set_v up_o that_o power_n over_o all_o which_o emperor_n and_o imperial_a council_n set_v up_o only_o over_o one_o empire_n 5._o we_o be_v swear_v against_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n for_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v dissolve_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o we_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o it_o 6._o yet_o we_o hold_v that_o all_o christian_n shall_v live_v in_o all_o possible_a love_n and_o concord_n counsel_v and_o help_v one_o another_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o such_o council_n be_v useful_a thereto_o as_o may_v be_v have_v without_o more_o hurt_n than_o good_a but_o that_o no_o universal_a govern_v power_n beside_o christ_n for_o legislation_n judgement_n or_o execution_n be_v needful_a to_o that_o concord_n nor_o be_v a_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n by_o any_o one_o political_a supreme_a pope_n or_o council_n or_o college_n of_o pastor_n or_o cardinal_n any_o more_o possible_a or_o lawful_a to_o be_v seek_v than_o that_o all_o the_o kingdom_n on_o earth_n have_v one_o humane_a civil_a sovereign_n though_o all_o king_n as_o well_o as_o all_o bishop_n be_v bind_v to_o serve_v god_n with_o the_o great_a concord_n that_o they_o can_v attain_v but_o now_o he_o that_o will_v read_v many_o late_a divine_n of_o england_n will_v find_v that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o this_o 1._o to_o take_v the_o foresay_a conciliar_a and_o french_a papist_n to_o be_v no_o papist_n and_o so_o to_o make_v it_o a_o controversy_n de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la in_o which_o for_o i_o let_v they_o have_v their_o liberty_n 2_o to_o take_v it_o for_o a_o necessary_a thing_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o world_n have_v one_o supreme_a govern_v power_n under_o christ_n and_o be_v a_o society_n that_o be_v therein_o visible_o one_o and_o 3._o that_o this_o one_o rule_v power_n be_v either_o a_o general_n council_n or_o the_o college_n of_o all_o bishop_n on_o earth_n 4._o and_o that_o the_o imperial_a church-form_n be_v and_o be_v to_o be_v the_o true_a universal_a church_n form_n viz._n a_o general_n council_n where_o the_o five_o patriarch_n be_v by_o themselves_o or_o by_o consent_n 5._o and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v precedent_n and_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la and_o chief_a patriarch_n and_o so_o to_o be_v obey_v by_o we_o 6._o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a way_n to_o universal_a concord_n but_o by_o be_v of_o this_o one_o church_n so_o form_v and_o obey_v its_o universal_a law_n which_o they_o say_v christ_n have_v give_v they_o power_n to_o make_v 7._o and_o that_o they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v that_o do_v not_o so_o consent_v and_o obey_v 8._o yea_o say_v some_o to_o we_o in_o england_n it_o be_v compel_v obedience_n to_o all_o the_o present_a imposition_n which_o only_o must_v cure_v our_o division_n without_o abatement_n for_o union_n or_o any_o toleration_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o of_o this_o nature_n be_v build_v on_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o earth_n be_v one_o as_o under_o one_o humane_a supreme_a government_n under_o christ_n and_o that_o all_o be_v schismatic_n that_o be_v not_o of_o it_o and_o obey_v it_o not_o i_o be_o not_o for_o disgrace_v any_o by_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n that_o refuse_v it_o whether_o the_o french_a and_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n constance_n and_o basil_n shall_v be_v call_v papist_n i_o contend_v not_o but_o whether_o those_o false_a principle_n be_v the_o only_a term_n of_o concord_n wise_a man_n will_v cautelous_o consider_v advertisement_n there_o be_v late_o publish_v a_o book_n of_o the_o same_o author_n call_v a_o search_n for_o the_o english_a schismatic_n by_o the_o case_n and_o character_n 1._o of_o the_o diocesan_n cannoneer_n 2._o of_o the_o present_a mere_a nonconformist_n not_o as_o a_o accusation_n of_o the_o former_a but_o a_o necessary_a defence_n of_o the_o latter_a so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v wrongful_o accuse_v and_o persecute_v by_o they_o and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v by_o nevil_n simmons_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o three_o golden_a cock_n at_o the_o west-end_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o content_n a_o historical_a preface_n dr._n stillingfleet_n judgement_n as_o in_o his_o irenicon_n a_o premise_v explication_n of_o the_o equivocal_a word_n church_n what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v in_o our_o judgement_n and_o what_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o of_o our_o silencer_n chap._n 1._o dr._n stillingfleet_n large_a and_o plain_o assert_v of_o our_o principle_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o archbishop_n laud_n and_o rom._n idolatry_n p._n 1._o chap._n 2._o some_o animadversion_n on_o his_o preface_n whether_o the_o jesuit_n first_o bring_v in_o spiritual_a prayer_n a_o full_a explication_n of_o our_o judgement_n about_o spiritual_a prayer_n his_o hard_a term_n against_o man_n high_a or_o low_a choose_v tutor_n for_o their_o child_n p._n 11._o chap._n 3._o dr._n stillingfleet_n his_o accusation_n examine_v his_o confusion_n dispute_v a_o question_n not_o state_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o our_o church_n by_o communion_n by_o constant_a by_o withdraw_a by_o separate_a congregation_n what_o separation_n i_o be_o for_o or_o against_o whether_o he_o say_v true_a that_o my_o tremendous_a aggravation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o conform_v be_v write_v without_o the_o least_o provocation_n on_o their_o part_n or_o that_o as_o design_v to_o represent_v the_o clergy_n as_o notorious_a lie_a perjure_a villain_n p._n 22._o etc._n etc._n chap._n 4._o his_o false_a history_n of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n as_o if_o bancroft'_v danger_n posit_n heylin_n and_o all_o such_o old_a accuser_n utter_o belie_v they_o and_o the_o canon_n make_v against_o they_o have_v a_o false_a supposition_n his_o citation_n examine_v more_o proof_n of_o his_o falsification_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o nonconformist_n and_o the_o brownist_n how_o we_o be_v use_v by_o they_o the_o reformatio_fw-la legum_n eccles_n how_o much_o for_o discipline_n i_o now_o add_v my_o request_n to_o the_o reader_n that_o will_v know_v how_o far_o the_o first_o reformer_n be_v of_o the_o nonconformist_n mind_n and_o against_o our_o new_a churchman_n that_o they_o will_v but_o read_v cranmer_n and_o the_o other_o drs._n word_n cite_v by_o dr._n stillingfleet_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o irenicon_n and_o leave_v out_o of_o dr._n burnet_n history_n and_o bucer_n scripta_fw-la anglicana_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la del_fw-it his_o censura_fw-la of_o the_o liturgy_n &_o de_fw-fr cura_fw-la anim._n etc._n etc._n the_o story_n of_o dr._n ames_n paul_n bayne_n dr._n fulk_n etc._n etc._n dr._n humphrey_n letter_n to_o the_o bishop_n p._n 55_o 56_o 57_o chap._n 5._o the_o false_a reason_n and_o accusation_n of_o his_o second_o part_n p._n 59_o my_o judgement_n and_o case_n state_v which_o he_o false_o report_v other_o case_n consider_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n against_o communion_n than_o be_v at_o the_o first_o reformation_n difference_n prove_v 1._o from_o the_o thing_n impose_v 2._o from_o the_o design_n of_o the_o imposer_n 3._o from_o the_o effect_n 4._o from_o the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n with_o who_o we_o communicate_v 5._o from_o the_o additional_a reason_n for_o our_o preach_v p._n 64._o what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o do_v that_o can_v have_v room_n in_o their_o church_n p._n 70._o his_o appeal_n to_o my_o case_n at_o kederminster_n shame_v p._n 71_o etc._n etc._n his_o false_a supposition_n that_o most_o of_o my_o hearer_n need_v not_o our_o teach_v because_o they_o sometime_o hear_v in_o the_o parish-church_n
p._n 73._o he_o acquit_v they_o from_o schism_n that_o separate_a if_o the_o church_n be_v schismatical_a 74._o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n then_o to_o read_v my_o few_o sheet_n call_v a_o search_n for_o the_o english_a schismatic_a more_o mistake_n p._n 74_o 75._o chap._n 6._o whether_o he_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o a_o fix_a member_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n the_o doctor_n schismatical_a error_n confute_v p._n 76._o he_o by_o this_o condemn_v apostles_n and_o evangelist_n that_o be_v itinerant_n and_o unfixed_a such_o as_o bucer_fw-la de_fw-la regno_fw-la dei_fw-la will_v have_v send_v abroad_o my_o exception_n about_o church_n and_o minister_n justify_v and_o his_o calumny_n detect_v p_o 80._o whether_o i_o give_v too_o much_o to_o the_o people_n or_o be_o against_o the_o right_n of_o patron_n or_o magistrate_n p._n 82._o many_o more_o calumny_n to_o p._n 89._o he_o accuse_v i_o as_o accuse_v they_o for_o name_v the_o sin_n that_o i_o dare_v not_o commit_v p._n 89._o more_o of_o his_o vain_a accusation_n to_o p._n 92._o whether_o he_o be_v for_o silence_v we_o p._n 92._o more_o of_o his_o calumny_n p._n 99_o considerable_a quere_z to_o he_o p._n 94._o how_o he_o will_v drive_v man_n to_o separation_n p._n 95_o 96._o he_o be_v come_v to_o self-condemning_a gentleness_n in_o expound_v his_o rule_n and_o text_n phil._n 3._o 16._o p._n 97._o his_o sad_a ennumeration_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o just_a separation_n p._n 98._o chap._n 7._o he_o begin_v his_o three_o part_n with_o more_o false_a accusation_n p._n 99_o his_o history_n for_o diocesan_n church_n against_o parochial_a find_v fallacious_a p._n 100_o etc._n etc._n his_o vain_a plea_n for_o the_o english_a frame_n p._n 106_o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v it_o be_v probable_a while_o the_o apostle_n live_v there_o be_v no_o fix_a bishop_n or_o but_o few_o p._n 108._o and_o dr._n hammond_n say_v no_o subject_a presbyter_n whether_o john_n fox_n be_v the_o publisher_n or_o prefacer_n of_o the_o reformatio_fw-la legum_n etc._n etc._n p._n 109._o discipline_n hard_a but_o not_o unnecessary_a p._n 111._o chap._n 8._o what_o the_o national_a church_n of_o england_n be_v full_o discuss_v and_o the_o doctor_n self-contradiction_n detect_v he_o deny_v any_o true_a political_a church_n of_o england_n he_o and_o we_o more_o agree_v than_o he_o and_o other_o high_a churchman_n that_o be_v for_o a_o constitutive_a political_a government_n p._n 112_o 113_o etc._n etc._n he_o make_v it_o a_o introduction_n of_o popery_n to_o hold_v that_o a_o church_n must_v have_v a_o constutive_a regent_n church-power_n and_o so_o fasten_v popery_n on_o the_o master_n of_o his_o cause_n chap._n 9_o that_o the_o mutual_a consent_n of_o pastor_n and_o flock_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o their_o relation_n about_o thirty_o proof_n from_o antiquity_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v for_o about_o 1000_o year_n of_o that_o mind_n and_o decree_v it_o p._n 128_o etc._n etc._n the_o necessity_n of_o consent_n prove_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o work_n where_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v all_o plain_o open_v p._n 133._o etc._n etc._n the_o doctor_n contrary_a surmise_n and_o false_a history_n full_o confute_v p._n 136_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 10._o of_o the_o impose_v use_v of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n and_o deny_v baptism_n to_o the_o refuser_n p._n 153._o his_o vain_a excuse_n confute_v whether_o the_o cross_n be_v use_v as_o a_o sacrament_n his_o disingenuous_a falsify_v my_o word_n of_o the_o use_n of_o crucifix_n and_o other_o image_n p._n 156_o etc._n etc._n what_o the_o papist_n ascribe_v to_o sacrament_n p._n 168._o chap._n 11._o whether_o the_o excommunicate_a church_n or_o the_o excommunicate_a nonconformist_n for_o not_o communicate_v when_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunicate_a be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n p._n 163._o chap._n 12._o of_o the_o english_a sort_n of_o sponsor_n and_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o parent_n duty_n p._n 167._o see_v more_o in_o the_o postscript_n chap._n 13._o of_o the_o three_o french_a letter_n which_o he_o subjoin_v p._n 171._o chap._n 14._o epistle_n and_o testimony_n compare_v with_o the_o doctor_n and_o note_n on_o mr._n jo._n glanviles_n book_n call_v the_o zealous_a impartial_a protestant_n with_o a_o letter_n of_o he_o to_o the_o author_n and_o a_o digression_n about_o dr._n lewis_n du_fw-fr moulin_n his_o publish_a picture_n and_o deathbed_n repentance_n a_o postscript_n of_o five_o notice_n viz._n 1._o of_o a_o new_a observation_n of_o the_o trade_n of_o take_v money_n to_o be_v godfather_n to_o poor_a man_n child_n and_o miss_v baptism_n for_o want_n of_o money_n 2._o a_o letter_n of_o mr._n w._n rathband_n of_o his_o father_n judgement_n and_o practice_n 3._o a_o excellent_a confutation_n of_o dr._n stillingfleet_v history_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o diocese_n and_o choice_n of_o bishop_n full_o prove_v that_o the_o old_a bishop_n be_v parochial_a or_o congregational_a and_o always_o choose_v by_o the_o people_n or_o not_o make_v they_o without_o their_o free_a consent_n by_o a_o learned_a and_o faithful_a minister_n 4._o a_o excellent_a vindication_n of_o the_o silence_a minister_n by_o a_o conformist_n etc._n etc._n 5._o my_o apology_n for_o the_o nonformists_n preach_v write_a by_o i_o and_o come_v out_o with_o this_o errata_fw-la in_o the_o preface_n sect._n 17._o line_n 13._o read_v plead_v for_o l._n 17._o after_o clergy_n and_o people_n add_v of_o ●●●●●i●●●s●_n so_o evident_a be_v the_o right_n of_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n a_o answer_n to_o dean_n stilingfleet_v etc._n etc._n chap._n i._n the_o concord_n of_o dr._n stillengfleet_n and_o the_o nonconformist_n especial_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o my_o book_n of_o church_n concord_n about_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o schism_n and_o who_o be_v the_o schismatic_a write_v by_o he_o at_o age_n in_o his_o most_o own_a book_n and_o not_o in_o youth_n in_o his_o irenicon_n i_o stand_v to_o all_o my_o word_n against_o schism_n which_o he_o have_v cite_v and_o so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o stand_v to_o these_o follow_v of_o his_o discourse_v of_o idolatry_n of_o rome_n p._n 7._o though_o we_o know_v not_o what_o allowance_n god_n will_v make_v for_o invincible_a ignorance_n we_o be_v sure_a that_o wilful_a ignorance_n or_o choose_v a_o worse_a church_n before_o a_o better_a be_v a_o damnable_a sin_n and_o unrepented_a of_o destroy_v salvation_n the_o papist_n consent_n p._n 43._o i_o agree_v so_o far_o with_o he_o that_o every_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o choose_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n but_o which_o that_o church_n be_v must_v be_v see_v by_o the_o ground_n it_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n it_o teach_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o church_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v pure_a that_o have_v the_o best_a ground●_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n to_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o pag._n 194._o 195._o 1._o the_o church_n power_n be_v only_o to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o and_o i_o hope_v none_o dare_v challenge_v more_o but_o this_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o natural_a reason_n that_o no_o power_n in_o a_o society_n ought_v to_o be_v extend_v 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o it_o or_o to_o contradict_v the_o end_n and_o design_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o most_o competent_a judge_n of_o what_o make_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 216._o 217._o 1._o it_o be_v agree_v on_o both_o side_n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v contline_a in_o they_o the_o unquestionable_a will_n of_o that_o god_n who_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o serve_v and_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o devotion_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o our_o life_n to_o serve_v he_o what_o be_v there_o the_o mind_n of_o any_o one_o who_o sincere_o desire_v to_o do_v it_o can_v be_v more_o inquisitive_a after_o or_o satisfy_v in_o than_o the_o rule_v god_n himself_o have_v give_v for_o his_o own_o service_n because_o it_o be_v so_o easy_o a_o matter_n for_o man_n to_o mistake_v in_o the_o way_n they_o choose_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o i_o see_v the_o world_n divide_v more_o scarce_o about_o any_o thing_n than_o this_o pag._n 218._o can_v any_o man_n imagine_v a_o better_a way_n if_o it_o can_v be_v hope_v for_o than_o that_o god_n himself_o shall_v interpose_v and_o declare_v his_o own_o mind_n according_a to_o what_o way_n they_o ought_v to_o serve_v he_o and_o this_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v do_v already_o by_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o after_o all_o this_o must_v not_o all_o person_n concern_v be_v allow_v to_o inquire_v into_o that_o which_o be_v own_v to_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o do_v they_o think_v
or_o form_n which_o another_o may_v speak_v the_o help_n of_o knowledge_n hear_v use_n and_o passion_n may_v help_v he_o to_o word_n therefore_o they_o never_o take_v a_o man_n to_o be_v prove_v godly_a or_o sincee_a by_o his_o bare_a word_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n which_o be_v holy_a desire_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o by_o the_o speak_n gift_n or_o habit_n 11._o but_o we_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o jesuit_n that_o first_o say_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o mouth_n speak_v and_o though_o the_o tongue_n may_v lie_v it_o be_v make_v to_o express_v the_o mind_n and_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o other_o man_n mind_n by_o their_o word_n till_o somewhat_o else_o disprove_v they_o and_o its_o natural_a for_o the_o heart_n to_o lead_v the_o tongue_n and_o man_n be_v more_o affect_v by_o word_n which_o come_v from_o affection_n than_o by_o those_o that_o do_v not_o and_o read_v word_n write_v by_o another_o when_o we_o speak_v to_o god_n be_v not_o so_o natural_a a_o signification_n of_o desire_n or_o other_o affection_n as_o speak_v they_o from_o the_o present_a dictate_v of_o the_o heart_n for_o any_o child_n that_o can_v read_v may_v do_v the_o one_o and_o it_o be_v not_o the_o usual_a signification_n of_o seriousness_n in_o other_o action_n a_o beggar_n that_o shall_v only_o read_v his_o beg_a lesson_n or_o a_o child_n or_o servant_n that_o shall_v only_o read_v some_o word_n to_o his_o father_n or_o master_n will_v be_v think_v less_o sensible_a of_o his_o want_n 12._o minister_n shall_v be_v man_n better_o acquaint_v than_o the_o people_n how_o to_o speak_v to_o god_n and_o man_n it_o be_v their_o office_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o choose_v the_o word_n which_o be_v fit_a and_o to_o set_v up_o a_o ministry_n that_o can_v do_v neither_o be_v to_o befriend_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o light_n and_o to_o be_v a_o deadly_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n and_o soul_n and_o to_o set_v up_o a_o ministry_n that_o need_v not_o do_v it_o but_o may_v choose_v or_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o it_o be_v the_o way_n to_o set_v up_o a_o ministry_n that_o can_v do_v it_o let_v the_o minister_n be_v bind_v to_o no_o more_o than_o to_o read_v and_o a_o few_o year_n will_v transform_v they_o to_o such_o as_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o read_v moscovy_n prove_v that_o and_o too_o many_o other_o country_n 13._o if_o it_o be_v pray_v free_o from_o present_a knowledge_n and_o desire_n without_o a_o book_n or_o set_v form_n which_o you_o call_v spiritual_a prayer_n either_o you_o be_v for_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o the_o pulpit_n or_o not_o if_o you_o be_v do_v the_o jesuit_n teach_v it_o you_o or_o will_v you_o go_v on_o to_o follow_v they_o if_o not_o what_o a_o divide_a party_n be_v the_o conformist_n while_o so_o many_o use_n it_o and_o pray_v spiritual_o and_o what_o a_o case_n be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o that_o have_v still_o so_o many_o minister_n that_o pray_v as_o the_o jesuit_n disciple_n or_o why_o do_v you_o so_o reproach_v your_o church_n and_o ministry_n 14._o do_v you_o think_v that_o there_o be_v more_o force_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o jesuit_n to_o disgrace_v spiritual_a prayer_n or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o spiritual_a prayer_n to_o honour_v the_o jesuit_n and_o do_v you_o not_o seem_v to_o prevaricate_v and_o high_o honour_v the_o jesuit_n on_o pretence_n of_o dishonour_v spiritual_a prayer_n if_o you_o have_v say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n first_o bring_v in_o spiritual_a preach_n and_o discourse_n and_o spiritual_a live_n will_v it_o not_o have_v more_o honour_v they_o than_o dishonour_v spirituality_n will_v freedom_n from_o spiritual_n prayer_n honour_n your_o church_n as_o seneca_n think_v cato_n name_n will_v do_v more_o to_o honour_v drunkenness_n than_o drunkenness_n can_v do_v to_o dishonour_n cato_n i_o be_o not_o such_o a_o antipapist_n as_o to_o fall_v out_o with_o father_n son_n or_o holy-ghost_n because_o the_o jesuit_n own_v they_o you_o do_v but_o help_v to_o confirm_v my_o charity_n who_o have_v long_o think_v that_o among_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v many_o person_n true_o godly_a though_o their_o education_n converse_n and_o proud_a tyrannical_a worldly_a clergy_n have_v sad_o vitiate_v they_o 15._o all_o prayer_n write_v or_o unwritten_a be_v make_v by_o some_o body_n those_o that_o the_o bishop_n write_v down_o for_o we_o in_o the_o liturgy_n and_o for_o our_o fast_n be_v make_v by_o their_o invention_n either_o they_o have_v the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o make_v they_o or_o not_o if_o yea_o then_o why_o be_v it_o not_o as_o jesuitical_a to_o write_v a_o spiritual_a prayer_n as_o to_o speak_v one_o if_o not_o excuse_v they_o that_o say_v god_n spirit_n make_v not_o your_o liturgy_n nor_o be_v they_o spiritual_a prayer_n 16._o and_o be_v it_o not_o too_o like_o high_a and_o dangerous_a pride_n if_o such_o a_o one_o as_o bishop_n bancroft_n bishop_n laud_n bishop_n morley_n bishop_n gunning_n in_o a_o convocation_n or_o before_o every_o public_a fast_a shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o write_v the_o word_n of_o prayer_n and_o shall_v in_o effect_n say_v to_o all_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n in_o england_n the_o spirit_n cause_v we_o to_o write_v these_o prayer_n and_o our_o measure_n be_v so_o sure_a and_o great_a that_o none_o of_o you_o may_v presume_v to_o question_v it_o nor_o to_o think_v that_o you_o can_v pray_v spiritual_o in_o any_o word_n of_o your_o own_o but_o only_o in_o we_o at_o least_o in_o the_o assemby_n the_o spirit_n will_v help_v you_o if_o you_o say_v our_o word_n but_o not_o your_o own_o it_o now_o come_v into_o my_o mind_n what_o may_v be_v some_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o bishop_n gunning_n chaplain_n doctor_n saywell_n in_o his_o last_o book_n that_o none_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n but_o they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o work_n of_o their_o office_n it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o write_v doctrine_n sermon_n and_o prayer_n for_o all_o their_o clergy_n to_o use_v but_o do_v you_o not_o say_v also_o to_o the_o presbyter_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o have_v he_o why_o can_v they_o speak_v their_o own_o heart_n in_o other_o word_n than_o you_o be_v spiritual_a prayer_n appropriate_v to_o your_o liturgy_n word_n or_o form_n any_o more_o than_o at_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n he_o be_v to_o the_o pope_n instruction_n 17._o we_o all_o confess_v that_o as_o all_o the_o action_n of_o imperfect_a man_n have_v their_o imperfection_n so_o have_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o these_o be_v easy_o aggravate_v sudden_a free_a prayer_n and_o book_n prayer_n have_v both_o their_o conveniency_n and_o inconvenience_n the_o question_n be_v which_o hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la have_v the_o great_a and_o whether_o forbid_v either_o be_v not_o worst_o of_o all_o i_o have_v name_v the_o conveniency_n and_o inconvenience_n of_o each_o in_o my_o christian_a directory_n 18._o experience_n tell_v the_o world_n that_o the_o daily_a say_n over_o only_a the_o same_o word_n and_o that_o read_v out_o of_o a_o paper_n impose_v by_o other_o by_o one_o that_o no_o further_o show_v any_o sense_n of_o what_o he_o do_v be_v not_o so_o apt_a as_o more_o free_a and_o well_o vary_a word_n in_o season_n to_o keep_v people_n from_o sleepy_a senseless_a profanation_n and_o pray_v as_o the_o papist_n do_v with_o their_o mass_n rosary_n and_o bead_n and_o the_o variety_n of_o subject_n preach_v on_o and_o variety_n of_o occasion_n and_o all_o accident_n require_v some_o diversification_n of_o word_n and_o method_n 19_o it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o reverence_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o king_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o write_v a_o petition_n to_o he_o so_o to_o speak_v to_o he_o without_o book_n judge_n have_v serious_a work_n to_o do_v for_o estate_n and_o life_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v trust_v to_o speak_v without_o prescribe_a word_n and_o so_o be_v advocate_n lawyer_n ambassador_n physician_n philosopher_n and_o all_o man_n in_o their_o profession_n except_o minister_n and_o christian_n as_o such_o 20._o we_o know_v not_o why_o man_n may_v not_o be_v entrust_v to_o speak_v to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o imperfect_a man_n without_o impose_v book_n and_o word_n as_o well_o as_o to_o speak_v to_o man_n from_o the_o most_o perfect_a god_n and_o in_o his_o name_n in_o preach_v man_n action_n will_v be_v like_o man_n nothing_o that_o be_v not_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a shall_v be_v speak_v as_o from_o god_n and_o in_o his_o name_n and_o as_o after_o our_o frustrate_v treaty_n for_o concord_n 1661._o one_o of_o they_o nameless_a write_v a_o book_n against_o free_a pray_v
and_o as_o to_o his_o accusation_n of_o my_o book_n for_o concord_n i_o answer_v 1._o be_v it_o no_o minister_n work_v in_o a_o contend_a world_n to_o tell_v and_o prove_v what_o be_v christ_n ordain_v term_n of_o christian_a concord_n but_o his_o that_o be_v christ_n plenipotentiary_n on_o earth_n and_o be_v to_o set_v the_o term_n of_o peace_n and_o war_n is_n this_o speak_v like_o a_o peace_n maker_n and_o a_o divine_a do_v not_o he_o pretend_v also_o in_o his_o way_n to_o declare_v the_o term_n of_o concord_n 2._o but_o no_o man_n more_o hearty_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o lament_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n that_o when_o such_o man_n as_o bishop_n gunning_n dean_n stillingfleet_n dr._n saywel_n etc._n etc._n on_o one_o side_n and_o such_o as_o i_o and_o many_o better_a man_n on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v so_o many_o year_n study_v hard_a to_o know_v god_n will_v i_o be_o certain_a for_o myself_o and_o i_o hope_v it_o of_o they_o with_o a_o unseigned_a desire_n to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n what_o ever_o it_o cost_v and_o i_o profess_v as_o go_v to_o god_n that_o will_v he_o but_o make_v i_o know_v that_o popery_n silence_v prelacy_n imprison_v banish_v or_o ruine_v all_o nonconformist_n anabaptist_n antinomian_o quaker_n or_o any_o that_o ever_o i_o write_v against_o be_v in_o the_o right_n i_o will_v with_o great_a joy_n and_o thankfulness_n recant_v and_o turn_v to_o they_o than_o i_o will_v receive_v the_o great_a preferment_n in_o the_o land_n i_o say_v that_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o we_o shall_v so_o far_o differ_v as_o for_o one_o side_n to_o be_v confident_a that_o the_o other_o way_n of_o concord_n be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o ruin_n wickedness_n and_o confusion_n and_o to_o come_v to_o that_o boldness_n to_o proclaim_v this_o to_o the_o world_n alas_o how_o doleful_a a_o case_n be_v this_o what_o hope_v of_o christian_a peace_n and_o concord_n when_o such_o excellent_a sober_a well_o study_a man_n as_o they_o quite_o above_o the_o common_a sort_n not_o bias_v by_o honour_n or_o preferment_n or_o power_n by_o bishopric_n deanery_n mastership_n plurality_n or_o love_n of_o any_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o such_o as_o we_o that_o study_v and_o pray_v as_o hard_o as_o they_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n be_v yet_o confident_a to_o the_o height_n that_o each_o other_o term_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n be_v but_o satan_n way_n to_o to_o destroy_v they_o both_o and_o introduce_v as_o dr._n saywel_n say_v conventicle_n do_v heresy_n popery_n ignorance_n profaneness_n and_o confusion_n and_o what_o we_o be_v past_a doubt_n that_o their_o way_n will_v do_v experience_n say_v more_o than_o we_o may_v do_v oh_o what_o shall_v the_o poor_a people_n do_v in_o so_o great_a a_o temptation_n §_o 9_o but_o i_o must_v pass_v from_o his_o preface_n where_o i_o have_v note_v 1._o that_o he_o be_v yet_o so_o peaceable_a as_o to_o propose_v some_o sort_n of_o abatement_n for_o our_o concord_n that_o the_o benefit_n may_v be_v sibi_fw-la &_o suis_fw-la not_o reach_v our_o necessery_n but_o much_o better_a than_o nothing_o 2._o that_o they_o be_v so_o ill_o agree_v that_o bishop_n gunning_n chaplain_n write_v against_o it_o make_v the_o only_a way_n of_o peace_n to_o be_v by_o the_o sword_n to_o force_v all_o man_n to_o full_a obedience_n to_o their_o lordship_n in_o every_o thing_n enjoin_v not_o abate_v a_o oath_n a_o subscription_n a_o covenant_n a_o word_n a_o ceremony_n without_o comprehension_n or_o limit_a toleration_n 3_o and_o i_o can_v wish_v the_o doctor_n will_v consent_v at_o least_o that_o lord_n and_o parliament_n man_n may_v have_v the_o liberty_n themselves_o of_o educate_v their_o own_o son_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a reform_a religion_n and_o to_o choose_v their_o tutor_n and_o not_o confine_v they_o to_o conformist_n only_o the_o papist_n be_v tolerate_v in_o choose_v tutor_n for_o their_o child_n the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o this_o liberty_n from_o the_o protestant_n nor_o the_o turk_n from_o the_o greek_n and_o must_v you_o needs_o take_v it_o away_o from_o all_o the_o lord_n knight_n gentleman_n citizens_z and_o freeholders_n of_o england_n perhaps_o beggar_n will_v consent_v if_o you_o will_v keep_v their_o child_n or_o do_v what_o the_o godfather_n vow_v most_o gentleman_n that_o keep_v chaplain_n expect_v that_o they_o teach_v their_o son_n at_o home_n sometime_o at_o least_o what_o if_o a_o lord_n or_o knight_n have_v such_o a_o chaplain_n as_o hugh_n broughton_n or_o ainsworth_n or_o as_o amesius_n blondel_n salmatius_n as_o gataker_n vines_n burges_n etc._n etc._n must_v the_o law_n forbid_v they_o to_o read_v hebrew_n philosophy_n or_o divinity_n to_o their_o son_n i_o doubt_v you_o will_v scarce_o get_v the_o parliament_n hereafter_o to_o make_v such_o a_o law_n to_o fetter_v themselves_o lest_o next_o you_o will_v extend_v your_o dominion_n also_o to_o their_o wife_n as_o well_o as_o son_n and_o forbid_v they_o marry_v any_o but_o conformist_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o turn_v we_o all_o out_o of_o the_o public_a ministry_n methinks_v you_o may_v allow_v some_o the_o office_n of_o a_o schoolmaster_n or_o household_n tutor_n or_o chaplain_n under_o the_o law_n of_o peace_n unless_o the_o sword_n be_v all_o that_o you_o trust_v too_o if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v a_o uncertain_a thing_n the_o mind_n of_o prince_n be_v changeable_a and_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n be_v on_o the_o wheel_n when_o peter_n fly_v to_o the_o sword_n christ_n bid_v he_o put_v it_o up_o for_o they_o that_o so_o use_v it_o perish_v by_o it_o hurt_v many_o force_v many_o to_o hurt_v you_o or_o to_o desire_v their_o own_o deliverance_n though_o by_o your_o hurt_n chap._n iii_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o doctor_n unreasonable_a accusation_n examine_v his_o state_v of_o the_o case_n of_o separation_n §_o 1._o this_o much_o instead_o of_o a_o intelligible_a state_v of_o our_o controversy_n he_o give_v we_o page_n 2._o by_o separation_n we_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o withdraw_v from_o the_o constant_a communion_n of_o our_o church_n and_o join_v with_o separate_a congregation_n for_o great_a purity_n of_o worship_n and_o better_a mean_n of_o edification_n and_o may_v we_o be_v see_v by_o this_o that_o we_o understand_v the_o difference_n 1._o whether_o by_o our_o church_n he_o mean_v the_o parochial_a church_n and_o if_o so_o whether_o some_o or_o all_o or_o the_o diocesan_n church_n or_o the_o provincial_n or_o the_o national_a or_o all_o i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o know_v well_o that_o some_o withdraw_v from_o some_o parish_n church_n which_o join_v with_o other_o and_o some_o think_v they_o withdraw_v not_o from_o the_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_n if_o they_o communicate_v with_o any_o one_o parish_n church_n in_o the_o diocese_n and_o some_o renounce_v the_o diocesan_n church_n which_o constant_o join_v with_o the_o parochial_a and_o for_o the_o national_a church_n who_o can_v tell_v whether_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o it_o till_o we_o know_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o indeed_o in_o the_o latter_a part_n after_o the_o long_a dispute_n he_o condescend_v beyond_o expectation_n to_o explain_v that_o term_n but_o it_o be_v so_o as_o plain_o to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n of_o england_n in_o a_o political_a sense_n that_o have_v any_o constitutive_a regent_n part_n but_o even_o there_o so_o late_o he_o make_v it_o not_o possible_a to_o we_o to_o know_v whether_o we_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n or_o not_o for_o he_o make_v it_o to_o be_v but_o all_o the_o christian_n and_o church_n in_o the_o kingdom_n join_v by_o consent_n express_v by_o their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n under_o the_o same_o civil_a government_n and_o rule_n of_o religion_n doctrine_n and_o worship_n and_o government_n 1._o as_o it_o be_v a_o christian_a kingdom_n we_o be_v sure_a that_o we_o be_v member_n of_o it_o 2._o as_o it_o be_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n consent_v to_o the_o scripture_n yea_o and_o to_o article_n of_o doctrine_n and_o all_o that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n teach_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o we_o withdraw_v not_o from_o it_o 3._o but_o if_o every_o chancellor_n dean_n commissary_n surrogate_n etc._n etc._n or_o every_o form_n or_o word_n or_o ceremony_n be_v essential_a to_o their_o church_n we_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v of_o it_o and_o who_o not_o or_o real_o whether_o any_o reject_v not_o some_o one_o form_n word_n or_o office_n if_o every_o such_o thing_n be_v not_o essential_a he_o never_o in_o all_o the_o book_n tell_v we_o what_o be_v or_o how_o to_o know_v it_o or_o who_o be_v of_o it_o §_o 2._o and_o the_o word_n withdraw_v seem_v to_o imply_v former_a communion_n and_o if_o so_o he_o make_v
all_o the_o anabaptist_n independent_n presbyterian_o etc._n etc._n who_o never_o be_v of_o their_o church_n to_o be_v none_o of_o the_o separatist_n here_o mean_v but_o if_o by_o withdraw_a he_o mean_v not_o join_n in_o communion_n either_o he_o mean_v in_o the_o whole_a communion_n or_o but_o in_o part_n if_o the_o whole_a than_o the_o many_o thousand_o that_o live_v in_o the_o parish_n and_o communicate_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o parish_n church_n and_o who_o know_v than_o who_o be_v of_o their_o church_n and_o how_o few_o in_o many_o parish_n be_v of_o it_o that_o yet_o pass_v for_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o i_o that_o join_v with_o they_o be_o none_o of_o it_o in_o their_o account_n and._n 3._o what_o mean_v he_o by_o constant_a communion_n i_o go_v to_o the_o parish_n church_n when_o sickness_n hinder_v not_o once_o a_o day_n i_o go_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o be_o none_o of_o their_o church_n thousand_o go_v but_o rare_o and_o thousand_o scarce_o at_o all_o at_o least_o to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o these_o be_v of_o their_o church_n and_o no_o separatist_n 4._o but_o perhaps_o the_o conjunction_n be_v explicative_a and_o join_v with_o separate_a congregation_n for_o great_a purity_n and_o edification_n if_o so_o than_o he_o that_o never_o join_v with_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o be_v none_o of_o the_o intend_a separatist_n 2._o nor_o he_o that_o go_v to_o other_o church_n on_o other_o account_n than_o for_o purity_n of_o worship_n and_o edification_n as_o papist_n that_o go_v as_o to_o the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o the_o authority_n §_o 3._o but_o the_o utter_a ambiguity_n be_v in_o the_o word_n separate_v and_o that_o you_o may_v understand_v it_o he_o explain_v it_o by_o repeat_v it_o by_o separation_n he_o mean_v withdraw_v to_o separate_v congregation_n but_o the_o doubt_n be_v which_o be_v the_o separate_a congregation_n i_o name_v many_o sort_n of_o lawful_a and_o unlawful_a separation_n but_o he_o will_v not_o tell_v we_o which_o he_o mean_v by_o any_o entreaty_n §_o 4._o i_o will_v myself_o yet_o that_o i_o may_v be_v understand_v tell_v the_o reader_n what_o sort_v of_o separation_n i_o renounce_v and_o what_o i_o own_o but_o i_o have_v do_v it_o so_o oft_o and_o large_o that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o repeat_v it_o as_o oft_o as_o man_n confusion_n call_v i_o to_o it_o the_o reader_n who_o think_v it_o worth_a his_o labour_n may_v see_v it_o do_v in_o my_o first_o plea_n for_o peace_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o my_o cath._n theol._n and_o special_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o my_o treat_n of_o concord_n and_o in_o christ_n direct_v and_o he_o call_v i_o here_o afterward_o to_o the_o same_o certain_o it_o be_v only_o sinful_a separation_n that_o be_v in_o the_o question_n and_o as_o certain_o there_o be_v many_o sort_v not_o sinful_a i_o be_o local_o separate_v from_o all_o church_n save_v that_o where_o i_o be_o i_o moral_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o a_o unlawful_a policy_n and_o all_o other_o which_o be_v in_o specie_fw-la against_o god_n word_n i_o separate_v from_o some_o for_o heresy_n as_o be_v not_o capable_a matter_n of_o a_o church_n while_o they_o own_v not_o all_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n i_o separate_v from_o some_o as_o impose_v sin_n and_o refuse_v my_o communion_n without_o it_o i_o separate_v from_o some_o as_o have_v no_o lawful_a pastor_n some_o be_v uncapable_a matter_n and_o some_o be_v usurper_n that_o have_v no_o true_a call_n i_o separate_v from_o some_o only_o so_o far_o as_o to_o prefer_v a_o better_a rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la sometime_o a_o better_a as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n sometime_o as_o to_o the_o worship_n sometime_o as_o to_o the_o discipline_n sometime_o and_o most_o as_o to_o the_o pastor_n worth_n and_o work_n some_o go_v from_o their_o own_o parish_n because_o the_o minister_n be_v very_o ignorant_a in_o comparison_n of_o another_o to_o who_o they_o go_v some_o that_o hear_v the_o minister_n preach_v against_o preciseness_n and_o for_o ceremony_n have_v rather_o hear_v another_o that_o call_v they_o to_o holiness_n some_o that_o have_v tolerable_a preacher_n go_v to_o doctor_n still_v sleet_n and_o doctor_n tillotson_n as_o better_v some_o go_v for_o nearness_n to_o another_o church_n some_o go_v from_o their_o own_o parish_n because_o the_o minister_n cut_v the_o common-prayer_n too_o short_a and_o preach_v too_o long_o some_o because_o they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o go_v to_o such_o some_o because_o the_o parson_n be_v a_o arminian_n other_o because_o he_o be_v contrary_a some_o go_v to_o the_o minister_n that_o be_v strict_a in_o keep_v the_o scandalous_a from_o the_o sacrament_n some_o therefore_o go_v from_o he_o some_o remove_v their_o dwelling_n or_o lodging_n for_o these_o end_n and_o some_o do_v not_o some_o go_v from_o their_o own_o parish_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o organ_n in_o another_o and_o of_o old_a when_o nonconformist_n have_v parish_n church_n and_o use_v some_o part_n of_o the_o liturgy_n many_o go_v to_o they_o from_o their_o own_o parish_n some_o of_o these_o be_v lawful_a some_o be_v unlawful_a most_o certain_o they_o that_o go_v from_o their_o own_o parish_n yea_o or_o to_o nonconformist_n assembly_n in_o london_n go_v not_o all_o on_o the_o same_o account_n nor_o do_v the_o doctor_n and_o such_o other_o separate_v from_o i_o as_o i_o be_o say_v to_o do_v from_o they_o but_o otherwise_o and_o much_o more_o §_o 5._o if_o he_o will_v first_o have_v tell_v we_o what_o separation_n be_v sinful_a second_o and_o then_o have_v prove_v we_o guilty_a of_o it_o instead_o of_o the_o confuse_a talk_n of_o separation_n and_o a_o beg_v the_o question_n by_o supose_v that_o to_o be_v sinful_a which_o he_o will_v neither_o describe_v nor_o prove_v such_o it_o have_v be_v of_o some_o usefulness_n to_o our_o conviction_n but_o i_o confess_v i_o never_o like_v those_o physician_n who_o give_v their_o patient_n the_o medicine_n that_o they_o be_v best_a store_v with_o or_o they_o can_v best_o spare_v be_v the_o disease_n whatsoever_o nor_o the_o dispute_a that_o pour_v out_o what_o he_o be_v best_o furnish_v to_o say_v how_o useless_a soever_o to_o the_o reader_n or_o to_o the_o cause_n dispute_v shall_v not_o be_v like_o boy_n play_v at_o dust_n point_n who_o cover_v their_o point_n in_o a_o great_a heap_n of_o dust_n and_o then_o throw_v stone_n or_o cudgel_n at_o it_o and_o he_o that_o first_o uncover_v they_o win_v they_o dusty_a heap_n of_o ambiguous_a word_n confuse_o pour_v out_o befriend_v not_o truth_n that_o shall_v be_v naked_a nor_o the_o reader_n §_o 6._o some_o think_v it_o be_v the_o place_n call_v conventicle_n house_n which_o make_v the_o conformist_n call_v we_o separatist_n and_o they_o get_v oft_o into_o parish_n church_n and_o chapel_n be_v but_o these_o be_v make_v the_o worst_a of_o separatist_n and_o punish_v the_o more_o and_o doubletss_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v at_o any_o of_o the_o new_a tabernacle_n nor_o at_o the_o hospital_n nor_o at_o sturbridge_n fair_a where_o preach_v have_v long_o be_v use_v nor_o in_o a_o prison_n nor_o at_o the_o gallow_n to_o prisoner_n and_o people_n which_o be_v faulty_a separation_n §_o 7._o some_o thought_n that_o they_o mean_v that_o its_o want_n of_o the_o common-prayer_n that_o make_v we_o separatist_n and_o they_o have_v try_v and_o read_v the_o common-prayer_n in_o their_o assembly_n but_o these_o have_v be_v accuse_v and_o suffer_v the_o more_o and_o even_o mr._n cheny_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v his_o country_n for_o read_v it_o and_o preach_v in_o a_o unlicensed_a meeting_n and_o some_o read_v more_o and_o some_o less_o by_o this_o it_o will_v not_o be_v know_v who_o be_v the_o separatist_n the_o old_a nonconformist_n in_o their_o parish_n church_n read_v some_o more_o some_o less_o and_o now_o some_o conformist_n vary_v they_o say_v a_o conformist_n at_o greenwich_n keep_v up_o a_o common-prayer_n conventicle_n some_o conformist_n be_v accuse_v for_o overpass_a much_o one_o late_o suspend_v for_o wear_v the_o surplice_n too_o seldom_o and_o refuse_v to_o pray_v for_o our_o gracious_a queen_n and_o james_n duke_n of_o york_n how_o much_o of_o this_o go_v to_o make_v a_o separatist_n §_o 8._o some_o think_v it_o be_v want_v of_o the_o magistrate_n leave_v that_o make_v they_o call_v we_o separatist_n but_o when_o the_o king_n license_v we_o the_o accusation_n be_v the_o same_o yea_o mr._n hinkley_n and_o many_o other_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o take_v this_o for_o worst_a of_o all_o §_o 9_o some_o say_v it_o be_v want_v of_o the_o bishop_n licence_n but_o as_o mr._n tho._n gouge_n have_v his_o university_n licence_n and_o i_o have_v bishop_n sheldon_n licence_n
i_o think_v not_o invalidate_n and_o yet_o this_o go_v for_o no_o justification_n of_o we_o so_o be_v it_o with_o other_o §_o 10._o some_o think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o conventicle_n as_o describe_v by_o their_o cannon_n that_o must_v make_v we_o separatist_n which_o be_v of_o man_n that_o call_v themselves_o of_o another_o church_n but_o that_o be_v not_o it_o mr._n gouge_n mr._n poole_n mr._n humphrey_n and_o myself_o and_o abundance_n more_o that_o never_o gather_v any_o church_n nor_o call_v ourselves_o of_o any_o other_o than_o their_o own_o be_v nevertheless_o separatist_n in_o these_o man_n account_n §_o 11._o they_o that_o remember_v what_o be_v call_v separation_n in_o england_n of_o old_a suppose_v it_o have_v these_o two_o degree_n which_o make_v man_n call_v brownist_n first_o false_o take_v the_o parish_n minister_n and_o church_n for_o no_o true_a minister_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v communicate_v with_o second_o or_o in_o the_o low_a rank_n false_o take_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o parish_n minister_n and_o church_n to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o its_o a_o sin_n to_o have_v ordinary_a communion_n with_o they_o but_o they_o that_o have_v still_o disclaim_v both_o these_o be_v separatist_n still_o in_o our_o accuser_n sense_n §_o 12._o some_o thought_n that_o ordinary_a communicate_v in_o the_o parish_n church_n and_o plead_n for_o it_o will_v prove_v we_o no_o separatist_n with_o they_o but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v as_o my_o own_o and_o many_o other_o man_n experience_n prove_v §_o 13._o i_o be_o call_v after_o to_o say_v more_o of_o this_o the_o sum_n of_o my_o separation_n be_v this_o first_o that_o i_o take_v not_o the_o parish_n church_n to_o be_v the_o only_a church_n that_o i_o must_v communicate_v with_o and_o will_v not_o confine_v my_o communion_n to_o they_o alone_o as_o if_o they_o be_v a_o sect_n or_o all_o but_o will_v also_o have_v communion_n with_o dutch_a french_a or_o nonconformist_n 2._o i_o take_v not_o the_o order_n discipline_n and_o mode_n of_o worship_n in_o the_o parish_n church_n nor_o the_o preach_a of_o very_a many_o parson_n vicar_n and_o curate_n to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o desirable_a 3._o i_o take_v those_o to_o be_v no_o true_a political_a church_n which_o have_v no_o pastor_n that_o have_v all_o the_o qualification_n and_o call_v and_o authority_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o office_n and_o therefore_o can_v communicate_v with_o they_o but_o as_o with_o a_o flock_n without_o a_o pastor_n or_o a_o oratory_n community_n or_o catechize_v company_n 4._o i_o live_v peaceable_o under_o such_o bishop_n as_o have_v many_o hundred_o parish_n and_o no_o episcopos_fw-la gregis_fw-la true_a bishop_n and_o pastoral_a church_n under_o they_o as_o they_o think_v but_o i_o own_v not_o their_o constitution_n 5._o i_o join_v with_o all_o the_o church_n in_o england_n as_o associated_n for_o mutual_a help_n and_o concord_n in_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n prescribe_v and_o in_o all_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o all_o that_o all_o christian_a church_n be_v agree_v in_o and_o all_o that_o be_v true_o needful_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christianity_n but_o not_o absolute_o in_o all_o which_o their_o canon_n liturgy_n etc._n etc._n conttaine_v especial_o their_o sinful_a imposition_n and_o their_o presumptuous_a canonical_a excommunication_n of_o dissenter_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la 6._o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o christian_a kingdom_n of_o england_n as_o under_o the_o king_n according_a to_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o be_o for_o obey_v the_o law_n and_o rule_n in_o all_o thing_n lawful_o belong_v to_o their_o power_n to_o command_v but_o not_o for_o obey_v they_o in_o sin_n against_o god_n nor_o for_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v lawful_a because_o they_o command_v it_o nor_o for_o their_o take_n down_o family_n government_n or_o self_n government_n and_o discern_v private_a judgement_n of_o the_o subject_n this_o be_v my_o measure_n of_o separation_n §_o 14._o and_o i_o think_v in_o case_n that_o concern_v our_o own_o and_o many_o man_n salvation_n we_o shall_v have_v leave_n free_o to_o speak_v for_o ourselves_o and_o not_o be_v use_v as_o we_o be_v that_o must_v neither_o be_v endure_v to_o be_v silent_a or_o to_o speak_v let_v this_o dr._n open_v our_o case_n to_o you_o himself_o say_v he_o pref._n p._n 36._o speak_v of_o my_o first_o plea_n for_o peace_n as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v design_v on_o purpose_n to_o represent_v the_o clergy_n of_o our_o church_n as_o a_o company_n of_o notorious_a lie_v and_o perjure_a villain_n for_o conform_v to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o order_n establish_v among_o we_o for_o there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o thi●ty_o tremendous_a aggravation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o conformity_n set_v down_o in_o it_o and_o all_o this_o do_v without_o the_o 〈…〉_z provocation_n give_v on_o ove_z side_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v less_o regard_v my_o aggravation_n ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o i_o do_v that_o which_o you_o think_v as_o bad_a i_o will_v glad_o be_v tell_v of_o it_o though_o false_a accusation_n i_o desire_v not_o and_o impenitence_n be_v too_o soon_o learn_v without_o a_o teacher_n or_o academical_a degree_n and_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v save_v from_o it_o 2._o but_o reader_n i_o once_o more_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o reason_n and_o humanity_n as_o well_o as_o christianity_n to_o decide_v the_o case_n of_o this_o accusation_n 1._o we_o do_v in_o 1660._o and_o 1661._o all_o that_o we_o be_v able_a by_o labour_n petition_n and_o yield_v as_o far_o as_o we_o dare_v for_o fear_n of_o sin_n and_o hell_n to_o have_v be_v unite_v and_o live_v in_o church_n concord_n with_o the_o episcopal_a party_n 2._o when_o our_o labour_n and_o hope_n be_v frustrate_a and_o two_o thousand_o of_o we_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o ministry_n and_o afterward_o law_n make_v against_o we_o as_o conventicler_n first_o for_o our_o fine_v imprisonment_n and_o then_o banishment_n and_o after_o beside_o imprisonment_n to_o pay_v twenty_o pound_n the_o first_o sermon_n and_o forty_o pound_n the_o next_o and_o so_o on_o when_o after_o this_o the_o law_n that_o banish_v we_o from_o all_o city_n corporation_n etc._n etc._n and_o place_n where_o we_o late_o preach_v do_v most_o deep_o accuse_v we_o as_o the_o cause_n i_o never_o write_v so_o much_o as_o the_o reason_n of_o our_o dissent_n when_o by_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o law_n we_o be_v by_o informer_n and_o other_o use_v as_o be_v well_o know_v i_o be_v still_o silent_a my_o not_o conform_v show_v my_o dissent_n but_o i_o dare_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o tell_v they_o why_o lest_o it_o shall_v more_o exasperate_v they_o 3._o at_o last_o i_o be_v often_o tell_v that_o the_o bishop_n that_o first_o forbid_v my_o preach_v and_o many_o other_o after_o he_o oft_o say_v to_o great_a man_n mr._n baxter_n keep_v up_o a_o schism_n and_o yet_o hold_v all_o our_o conformity_n lawful_a save_o renounce_v a_o rebellious_a covenant_n and_o i_o yet_o continue_v silent_a 4._o at_o last_o they_o write_v against_o we_o that_o we_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o any_o part_n of_o conformity_n be_v sin_n but_o only_o inconvenient_a 5._o then_o many_o pulpit_n and_o book_n proclaim_v that_o we_o against_o our_o conscience_n keep_v up_o a_o schism_n for_o a_o baffle_a cause_n which_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v for_o 6._o all_o this_o while_n lord_n and_o commons_o use_v to_o ask_v we_o what_o be_v it_o that_o you_o will_v have_v and_o what_o keep_v you_o from_o conformity_n in_o private_a talk_n but_o will_v never_o allow_v we_o to_o speak_v for_o ourselves_o and_o give_v the_o world_n or_o parliament_n our_o reason_n 7._o many_o year_n together_o pulpit_n and_o print_a book_n of_o the_o clergy_n cry_v out_o to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o execute_v the_o law_n against_o we_o and_o as_o one_o say_v set_v fire_n to_o the_o faggot_n and_o blame_v they_o for_o not_o do_v it_o 8._o when_o the_o king_n give_v we_o his_o licence_n they_o be_v great_o offend_v as_o aforesaid_a 9_o at_o last_o one_o great_a bishop_n tell_v i_o that_o he_o will_v desire_v the_o king_n to_o constrain_v we_o to_o give_v our_o reason_n and_o not_o keep_v up_o a_o schism_n and_o not_o tell_v for_o what_o and_o another_o great_a tell_v i_o that_o the_o king_n take_v we_o to_o be_v not_o sincere_a that_o will_v not_o give_v our_o reason_n and_o all_o this_o while_n i_o dare_v not_o give_v they_o as_o know_v how_o they_o will_v be_v receive_v 10._o when_o the_o bishop_n keep_v i_o from_o preach_v and_o give_v i_o leisure_n i_o write_v 1._o a_o apology_n for_o our_o preach_v 2_o a_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o divers_a other_o such_o and_o yet_o dare_v not_o print_v they_o
nor_o indeed_o can_v do_v it_o 11._o at_o last_o after_o about_o seventeen_o or_o eighteen_o year_n silence_n by_o such_o importunity_n and_o the_o press_n be_v more_o open_a i_o venture_v first_o but_o to_o write_v my_o first_o plea_n for_o peace_n which_o only_o name_v matter_n of_o fact_n and_o our_o bare_a judgement_n enumerate_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o think_v sin_n without_o our_o argument_n lest_o it_o shall_v provoke_v they_o more_o and_o therein_o profess_v that_o know_v man_n different_a education_n study_n interest_n etc._n etc._n i_o do_v not_o by_o this_o accuse_v the_o conformist_n nor_o the_o law_n maker_n but_o only_o tell_v 1._o what_o i_o think_v will_v be_v sin_n in_o we_o 2._o and_o how_o great_a a_o sin_n if_o we_o conform_v reader_n shall_v i_o have_v stay_v long_o the_o small_a tract_n of_o sacrilegious_a desertion_n of_o the_o ministry_n come_v out_o when_o we_o be_v license_v but_o venture_v not_o to_o name_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o nonconformity_n what_o can_v we_o do_v less_o i_o stay_v till_o i_o think_v half_a the_o silence_a minister_n be_v dead_a be_v the_o call_n of_o superior_n the_o interest_n of_o our_o ministry_n and_o conscience_n of_o so_o little_a regard_n as_o that_o i_o must_v not_o tell_v man_n that_o so_o loud_a and_o long_o have_v ask_v what_o be_v the_o matter_n must_v we_o neither_o be_v silent_a nor_o speak_v and_o now_o see_v here_o 1._o if_o dean_n stillingfleet_n be_v a_o man_n to_o be_v believe_v in_o such_o accusation_n all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o i_o without_o the_o least_o provocation_n on_o their_o side_n wonderful_a difference_n be_v my_o name_n what_o i_o think_v god_n forbid_v i_o so_o great_a a_o provocation_n to_o they_o and_o be_v all_o this_o for_o seventeen_o year_n before_o name_v not_o the_o least_o provocation_n to_o we_o on_o their_o part_n what_o shall_v one_o think_v can_v bring_v such_o a_o man_n to_o such_o a_o word_n 2._o and_o that_o which_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o write_v not_o to_o accuse_v they_o he_o tell_v you_o be_v as_o if_o design_v to_o represent_v they_o as_o a_o company_n of_o notorious_a lie_n perjure_a villain_n this_o collection_n i_o fear_v but_o how_o can_v i_o avoid_v it_o must_v not_o i_o tell_v they_o that_o urge_v i_o what_o sin_n i_o fear_v lest_o they_o say_v you_o represent_v we_o as_o such_o 3._o see_v here_o how_o they_o talk_v of_o we_o contrary_o as_o the_o barbarian_n of_o paul_n that_o now_o make_v he_o a_o murderer_n and_o anon_o a_o god_n for_o many_o year_n together_o our_o lord_n and_o master_n persuade_v man_n that_o we_o take_v conformity_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n save_o renounce_v the_o covenant_n and_o now_o how_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o representation_n of_o a_o company_n of_o notorious_a lie_v perjure_a villain_n with_o thirty_o tremendous_a aggravation_n repent_v o_o england_n say_v bradford_n at_o the_o stake_n but_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o repentance_n have_v be_v so_o hard_a a_o work_n in_o a_o case_n call_v so_o heinous_a and_o that_o to_o the_o preacher_n of_o repentance_n as_o it_o be_v either_o to_o they_o or_o to_o we_o which_o ever_o it_o be_v that_o be_v find_v in_o the_o guilt_n chap._n iu._n of_o his_o history_n of_o the_o case_n of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n §_o 1._o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o sameness_n of_o the_o former_a case_n and_o we_o i_o shall_v tell_v he_o the_o difference_n after_o where_o he_o more_o call_v i_o to_o it_o and_o shall_v show_v he_o so_o much_o difference_n as_o will_v discredit_v this_o assertion_n §_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o case_n of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v premise_v that_o we_o take_v they_o not_o for_o any_o of_o our_o rule_n but_o cleave_v to_o god_n word_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n look_v still_o at_o the_o great_a end_n of_o order_n and_o government_n 2._o we_o maintain_v as_o well_o as_o he_o that_o the_o chief_a nonconformist_n be_v against_o that_o call_v brownism_n or_o separation_n and_o write_v more_o against_o it_o than_o the_o conformist_n do_v 3._o i_o still_o profess_v myself_o to_o be_v of_o their_o judgement_n in_o this_o and_o have_v practise_v according_o 4._o but_o they_o be_v not_o against_o such_o preach_a or_o any_o such_o sort_n of_o separation_n as_o i_o have_v either_o practise_v or_o defend_v §_o 3._o here_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v know_v what_o the_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o separatist_n be_v 1._o the_o high_a sort_n of_o separatist_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v no_o true_a church_n the_o nonconformist_n say_v it_o be_v a_o true_a national_a church_n both_o as_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o as_o a_o association_n of_o church_n and_o as_o represent_v in_o national_a synod_n be_v they_o make_v one_o 2._o the_o say_v brownist_n say_v that_o the_o parish_n church_n be_v no_o true_a church_n nor_o to_o be_v own_v as_o such_o nor_o join_v with_o the_o nonconformist_n hold_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n that_o have_v capable_a minister_n though_o faulty_a 3._o the_o separatist_n say_v that_o the_o parish_n minister_n be_v no_o true_a minister_n because_o ordain_v by_o diocesan_n and_o not_o choose_v by_o the_o people_n etc._n etc._n the_o nonconformist_n say_v that_o the_o capable_a be_v true_a though_o faulty_a minister_n own_v by_o the_o people_n consent_v communion_n and_o the_o ordination_n valid_a though_o culpable_a 4._o the_o separatist_n say_v that_o minister_n and_o people_n must_v gather_v church_n that_o be_v pure_a and_o set_v up_o better_a discipline_n in_o they_o whatever_o ruler_n say_v or_o do_v against_o it_o or_o whatever_o they_o suffer_v as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a the_o nonconformist_n say_v this_o be_v to_o be_v do_v where_o it_o may_v be_v do_v without_o do_v more_o hurt_v than_o good_a but_o else_o it_o be_v no_o duty_n but_o a_o sin_n viz._n to_o do_v it_o tumultuous_o seditious_o or_o so_o as_o by_o run_v on_o the_o magistrate_n sword_n by_o improbable_a attempt_n to_o lose_v their_o own_o advantage_n for_o do_v and_o get_v good_a and_o hinder_v the_o common_a parish_n reformation_n 5._o the_o separatist_n say_v that_o no_o prohibition_n of_o the_o magistrate_n will_v warrant_v a_o minister_n to_o forbear_v the_o public_a work_n of_o his_o office_n the_o nonconformist_n hold_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o restrain_v deceiver_n and_o all_o false_a teacher_n who_o do_v more_o hurt_v than_o good_a and_o such_o shall_v obey_v when_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v and_o administer_v sacrament_n yea_o if_o the_o magistrate_n wrongful_o forbid_v a_o worthy_a minister_n to_o preach_v for_o order_n he_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v unless_o the_o need_n of_o the_o church_n and_o soul_n and_o the_o probable_a benefit_n plain_o weigh_v down_o that_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o make_v the_o magistrate_n prohibition_n invalid_a as_o be_v against_o the_o common_a good_a and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o so_o against_o christ_n 6._o the_o semi-separatist_n robinson_n party_n after_o hold_v that_o though_o the_o parish_n church_n may_v be_v call_v true_a church_n as_o a_o leper_n be_v a_o true_a man_n and_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o hear_v a_o sermon_n in_o they_o yet_o the_o common-prayer_n be_v so_o bad_a and_o the_o people_n and_o minister_n so_o bad_a and_o discipline_n so_o cast_v out_o that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o common-prayer_n or_o sacrament_n or_o to_o become_v settle_a member_n of_o they_o but_o all_o must_v attempt_v though_o in_o foreign_a country_n that_o be_v able_a to_o set_v up_o pure_a worship_n and_o discipline_n the_o nonconformist_n hold_v that_o those_o that_o can_v have_v better_o without_o more_o hurt_n than_o good_a shall_v cheose_v it_o but_o they_o that_o can_v may_v join_v in_o member-ship_n common-prayer_n and_o sacrament_n with_o such_o parish_n church_n as_o will_v admit_v they_o without_o their_o own_o actual_a sin_n and_o consent_v to_o their_o fault_n §_o 4._o i_o shall_v now_o give_v you_o so_o full_a proof_n that_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v for_o more_o which_o the_o doctor_n call_v separation_n than_o my_o preach_a or_o practice_n ever_o reach_v to_o as_o i_o shall_v tell_v the_o reader_n what_o credit_n this_o doctor_n history_n deserve_v and_o what_o inhuman_a usuage_v the_o nonconformist_n have_v from_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n §_o 5._o anno_fw-la 1593._o be_v print_v against_o they_o bishop_n bancroft'_v book_n call_v dangerous_a position_n and_o proceed_n etc._n etc._n or_o english_a scotize_v for_o discipline_n by_o force_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o first_o book_n he_o make_v their_o reformation_n so_o odious_a as_o that_o page_n 30._o he_o say_v that_o in_o scotland_n it_o have_v wrought_v more_o mischief_n in_o thirty_o year_n
gospel_n be_v deal_v with_o by_o sober_a man_n who_o admonition_n if_o they_o receive_v they_o shall_v give_v god_n thanks_o but_o if_o they_o go_v on_o in_o the_o crime_n they_o shall_v be_v sharp_o punish_v as_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v 5._o de_fw-fr contion_n cap._n 3._o preacher_n shall_v name_v no_o guilty_a person_n before_o the_o multitude_n unless_o such_o as_o have_v contemn_v ecclesiastical_a admonition_n such_o may_v be_v name_v 6._o de_fw-fr ●xc_fw-fr excommunication_n for_o none_o but_o horrible_a crime_n etc._n etc._n cap._n 4._o and_o after_o oft_o admonition_n but_o you_o excommunicate_fw-la all_o godly_a man_n that_o do_v but_o say_v your_o conformity_n be_v not_o lawful_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o your_o canon_n 7._o cap._n 6._o we_o permit_v not_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n to_o be_v in_o any_o one_o person_n though_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o wh●le_a church_n be_v special_o desirable_a yet_o because_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o gather_v and_o take_v it_o let_v excommunication_n thus_o proceed_v that_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n or_o other_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n call_v one_o justice_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o place_n where_o the_o guilty_a person_n dwell_v or_o his_o deputy_n and_o two_o or_o three_o other_o learned_a and_o well_o man_n ●ered_v presbyter_n in_o who_o presence_n when_o the_o matter_n have_v be_v most_o diligent_o handle_v and_o grave_o weigh_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n shall_v pass_v cap._n 7._o and_o be_v write_v cap._n 16_o there_o be_v write_v a_o large_a pious_a form_n like_o a_o sermon_n to_o be_v use_v at_o the_o reconcile_n of_o the_o penitent_a and_o his_o form_n of_o confession_n and_o petition_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o then_o the_o pastor_n of_o that_o church_n be_v to_o ask_v all_o the_o flock_n whether_o they_o will_v forgive_v the_o offender_n and_o pray_v for_o he_o and_o whether_o they_o will_v have_v he_o receive_v into_o their_o congregation_n as_o a_o brother_n and_o then_o the_o pastor_n be_v to_o exhort_v the_o penitent_a and_o then_o absolve_v he_o a_o great_a and_o solemn_a work_n most_o unlike_a your_o discipline_n and_o then_o to_o give_v god_n thanks_o and_o pray_v for_o he_o and_o the_o church_n shall_v we_o now_o but_o move_v for_o thus_o much_o in_o order_n to_o concord_n with_o the_o cconformists_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v no_o importunity_n can_v prevail_v for_o it_o be_v the_o consequent_n of_o our_o division_n as_o dismal_a as_o they_o be_v now_o by_o most_o proclaim_v yet_o very_o we_o be_v most_o unexcusable_a wretch_n if_o we_o have_v learn_v no_o more_o to_o this_o day_n than_o they_o do_v in_o so_o few_o year_n or_o under_o full_a power_n and_o opportunity_n will_v resist_v that_o good_a which_o they_o that_o want_v such_o opportunity_n wish_v for_o and_o go_v back_o as_o fast_o as_o they_o go_v forward_o sect._n 14._o to_o p._n 8._o i_o never_o say_v that_o the_o trouble_n at_o frankford_n be_v so_o much_o about_o free_a or_o formal_a prayer_n as_o that_o the_o presbyterian_o refuse_v all_o form_n sect._n 15._o p._n 19_o he_o confess_v that_o whittingham_n samson_n gilby_n and_o other_o accept_v of_o preferment_n and_o employment_n in_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n show_v they_o kindness_n for_o their_o forward_a zealous_a preach_v and_o this_o be_v without_o their_o subscribe_v to_o conform_v be_v it_o any_o wonder_n then_o that_o they_o gather_v not_o assembly_n elsewhere_o have_v the_o bishop_n so_o try_v we_o we_o shall_v never_o have_v put_v they_o to_o talk_v so_o of_o our_o separation_n but_o might_n have_v do_v our_o best_a to_o build_v more_o church_n do_v none_o of_o all_o this_o difference_n their_o case_n and_o we_o sect._n 16._o p._n 20._o he_o confess_v when_o they_o be_v silence_v they_o begin_v to_o have_v separate_a meeting_n and_o yet_o be_v all_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n against_o such_o sect._n 17._o as_o to_o beza_n letter_n have_v not_o i_o say_v more_o against_o separation_n than_o he_o do_v do_v the_o dr._n think_v the_o reader_n so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o beza_n word_n be_v just_a of_o the_o same_o importance_n with_o the_o account_n i_o give_v and_o contrary_a to_o he_o viz._n he_o tremble_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o their_o exercise_v their_o function_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o bishop_n for_o such_o reason_n as_o may_v be_v easy_o understand_v though_o we_o say_v never_o a_o word_n of_o they_o it_o be_v easy_a indeed_o to_o see_v what_o he_o tremble_v at_o and_o why_o he_o name_v they_o not_o which_o he_o will_v sure_o in_o charity_n have_v do_v have_v it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v sinful_a disobedience_n to_o preach_v when_o forbid_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v what_o hurt_v it_o will_v have_v do_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o preacher_n and_o hearer_n and_o shake_v all_o the_o begin_v reformation_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o we_o gualther_n and_o zanchy_a say_v not_o so_o much_o against_o separation_n as_o i_o do_v nor_o john_n fox_n nor_o bullinger_n who_o he_o cit_v we_o say_v the_o same_o sect._n 18._o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o parker_n and_o gifford_n and_o i_o again_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o may_v name_v many_o more_o hildersham_n paget_n be_o etc._n etc._n i_o be_o of_o their_o judgement_n in_o their_o opposition_n to_o the_o brownist_n but_o it_o be_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n pag._n 33._o that_o the_o force_n of_o all_o the_o nonconformist_n reason_n against_o separation_n lay_v in_o two_o supposition_n 1._o that_o nothing_o can_v justify_v separation_n from_o our_o church_n but_o such_o corruption_n which_o overthrow_v the_o be_v and_o constitution_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o separation_n be_v a_o word_n of_o very_a many_o sense_n they_o hold_v indeed_o that_o none_o aught_o to_o separate_v from_o a_o church_n accuse_v it_o to_o be_v none_o but_o for_o that_o which_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v none_o 2._o but_o do_v they_o deny_v that_o which_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n confess_v viz._n 1._o what_o if_o our_o english_a divine_n gather_v by_o bishop_n hall_n against_o burton_n be_v in_o the_o right_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o a_o thief_n be_v a_o true_a man_n though_o i_o think_v otherwise_o must_v not_o such_o bishop_n or_o conformist_n therefore_o separate_v from_o they_o 2._o what_o if_o a_o church_n impose_v some_o lie_n false_a oath_n or_o subscription_n or_o some_o actual_a sin_n in_o worship_n as_o a_o condition_n sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la of_o her_o communion_n be_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o separate_v into_o better_a assembly_n 3._o what_o if_o they_o put_v down_o all_o preach_n save_o read_v some_o dry_a homily_n and_o all_o discipline_n be_v it_o not_o lawful_a elsewhere_o to_o serve_v god_n better_o but_o of_o this_o more_o after_o where_o he_o repeat_v it_o the_o brownist_n case_n be_v quite_o other_o before_o describe_v sect._n 19_o to_o p._n 36_o 37._o we_o also_o hold_v that_o whosoever_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 1._o as_o have_v not_o that_o preach_a and_o sacrament_n which_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n 2._o or_o as_o not_o profess_v true_a save_a faith_n do_v by_o consequence_n separate_v from_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n because_o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o word_n sacrament_n and_o christian_n faith_n and_o to_o this_o mr._n jacob_n argument_n be_v good_a p._n 38._o though_o he_o be_v the_o man_n that_o answer_v downam_n sermon_n for_o bishop_n and_o esteem_v one_o of_o the_o first_o independent_o and_o mr._n ball_n word_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o the_o second_o supposition_n p._n 39_o we_o grant_v and_o think_v very_o that_o the_o late_a conformist_n have_v say_v more_o against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o we_o yea_o that_o we_o be_v the_o defender_n of_o it_o against_o the_o brownist_n and_o they_o ball_n bradshaw_n gifford_n hildersham_n etc._n etc._n cite_v by_o he_o defend_v it_o as_o we_o do_v and_o better_a than_o such_o as_o dr._n heylin_n thorndike_n mr._n dodwel_n and_o such_o other_o do_v he_o think_v any_o of_o this_o concern_v i_o sect._n 20._o yes_o for_o p._n 74._o he_o say_v we_o will_v blind_v the_o reader_n by_o find_v out_o the_o disparity_n of_o some_o circumstance_n but_o not_o one_o of_o we_o can_v deny_v that_o it_o be_v their_o judgement_n that_o the_o hold_v separate_a congregation_n for_o worship_n where_o there_o be_v a_o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n and_o the_o substantial_o of_o religion_n be_v unlawful_a and_o schismatical_a answ_n it_o be_v pity_n so_o see_v a_o dr._n shall_v tempt_v man_n to_o be_v so_o blind_a 1._o as_o to_o think_v all_o the_o difference_n which_o i_o have_v name_v inconsiderable_a 2._o and_o to_o go_v on_o to_o
abuse_v themselves_o and_o other_o with_o the_o ambiguous_a word_n separate_a no_o better_o explain_v 3._o and_o to_o think_v the_o other_o cause_v before_o and_o after_o name_v of_o some_o sort_n of_o separation_n to_o be_v insufficient_a and_o i_o be_o sorry_a for_o the_o dr._n if_o this_o be_v his_o own_o profession_n that_o he_o will_v tell_v any_o lie_n or_o commit_v any_o other_o sin_n or_o forsake_v any_o other_o part_n of_o religion_n rather_o than_o separate_v to_o other_o assembly_n from_o a_o church_n that_o agree_v in_o doctrine_n and_o the_o substantial_o of_o worship_n with_o he_o the_o presbyterian_o then_o be_v sure_a of_o he_o if_o they_o be_v but_o in_o possession_n and_o it_o seem_v in_o moscovy_n he_o will_v forsake_v preach_v but_o what_o if_o the_o king_n license_v a_o preach_a church_n will_v he_o refuse_v the_o use_n of_o it_o for_o fear_n of_o separate_n from_o a_o mere_a read_v church_n this_o protean_a word_n separate_a serve_v for_o many_o use_n i_o will_v put_v one_o case_n more_o to_o the_o dr._n not_o feign_v a_o conformist_a gentleman_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n that_o his_o parish_n church_n be_v no_o true_a church_n because_o the_o vicar_n be_v a_o socinian_n and_o another_o because_o the_o parson_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o they_o go_v to_o the_o next_o parish_n church_n a_o nonconformist_n in_o the_o same_o parish_n go_v to_o a_o nonconformist_n chappel_n but_o do_v not_o accuse_v the_o parish_n church_n as_o none_o as_o the_o other_o do_v which_o of_o these_o separate_v more_o at_o gloucester_n one_o take_v the_o diocesan_n church_n for_o no_o true_a church_n because_o bishop_n goodman_n be_v a_o papist_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o constitutive_a part_n and_o yet_o this_o man_n be_v for_o diocesan_n a_o nonconformist_n go_v to_o a_o nonconformist_n church_n but_o will_v not_o say_v the_o diocesan_n church_n be_v none_o which_o separate_v more_o he_o separate_v from_o his_o parish_n church_n against_o the_o canon_n who_o go_v from_o a_o ignorant_a scandalous_a reader_n to_o communicate_v with_o a_o preacher_n at_o the_o next_o parish_n he_o separate_v from_o the_o parish_n church_n who_o judge_v they_o true_a church_n but_o have_v the_o king_n licence_n join_v constant_o with_o the_o french_a dutch_a or_o nonconformist_n as_o better_v still_o own_v mental_a communion_n where_o he_o have_v not_o local_a and_o he_o separate_v from_o the_o french_a dutch_a or_o nonconformi_v church_n who_o thus_o leave_v they_o as_o true_a church_n to_o join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o better_v many_o and_o various_a be_v the_o sort_n and_o degree_n of_o separation_n and_o not_o all_o lawful_a or_o all_o unlawful_a none_o of_o these_o be_v the_o brownist_n separation_n which_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n confute_v which_o consist_v in_o a_o denial_n 1._o that_o the_o english_a minister_n be_v true_a minister_n 2._o and_o their_o church_n true_a church_n 3._o or_o such_o as_o a_o christian_a may_v lawful_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o in_o ordinary_a worship_n 4._o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o renounce_v they_o and_o set_v up_o other_o i_o doubt_v the_o dr._n be_v far_o more_o a_o separatist_n than_o i_o and_o such_o as_o i_o for_o i_o be_o for_o communion_n with_o all_o christian_n as_o far_o as_o they_o separate_v not_o from_o christ_n and_o i_o hate_v the_o false_a accuse_v of_o any_o church_n as_o if_o it_o be_v none_o or_o its_o communion_n unlawful_a i_o can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n at_o once_o but_o in_o heart_n i_o join_v with_o all_o christian_n on_o earth_n except_o in_o sin_n and_o local_o i_o join_v where_o i_o see_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o prefer_v that_o which_o i_o judge_v most_o agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n so_o far_o as_o i_o may_v without_o great_a hurt_n but_o the_o canonical_a conformist_n unchurch_n all_o the_o church_n here_o but_o their_o own_o and_o utter_o refuse_v communion_n with_o they_o even_o with_o those_o that_o refuse_v not_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o some_o think_v that_o forcible_a silence_v fine_v excommunicate_v and_o imprison_a be_v not_o the_o gentle_a sort_n of_o separate_n but_o do_v he_o in_o all_o his_o book_n do_v any_o thing_n to_o satisfy_v any_o man_n conscience_n that_o will_v know_v from_o what_o church_n he_o may_v or_o may_v not_o separate_v not_o a_o word_n that_o i_o can_v find_v that_o decide_v such_o a_o doubt_n his_o two_o word_n here_o use_v be_v agreement_n in_o doctrine_n and_o substantial_o of_o religion_n whereas_o 1._o religion_n be_v in_o act_n and_o habit_n and_o have_v no_o proper_a substance_n and_o what_o his_o term_n substance_n mean_v till_o he_o tell_v we_o none_o can_v know_v it_o must_v be_v either_o a_o essential_a part_n or_o a_o integral_a part_n for_o a_o accident_n i_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o if_o only_o a_o essential_a part_n what_o christian_a dare_v say_v that_o i_o may_v sin_v against_o all_o the_o mere_a integral_n of_o religion_n rather_o than_o go_v from_o the_o church_n that_o impose_v such_o sin_n upon_o i_o if_o it_o be_v all_o the_o integral_n that_o we_o must_v agree_v in_o than_o we_o differ_v in_o no_o one_o part_n of_o religion_n for_o accident_n be_v not_o part_n and_o than_o who_o contradict_v he_o when_o man_n differ_v in_o no_o part_n of_o religion_n they_o will_v not_o separate_v unless_o mere_o local_o be_v all_o the_o thing_n name_v in_o my_o first_o plea_n no_o part_n of_o religion_n it_o may_v be_v by_o substance_n he_o mean_v only_o the_o great_a sort_n of_o integral_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v where_o to_o six_o our_o measure_n what_o duty_n be_v so_o small_a that_o i_o may_v omit_v it_o or_o what_o sin_n so_o small_a that_o i_o may_v commit_v it_o for_o communion_n 2._o and_o as_o for_o doctrine_n they_o that_o differ_v in_o any_o part_n of_o religion_n be_v suppose_v to_o differ_v in_o the_o doctrine_n about_o that_o part_n but_o can_v any_o man_n tell_v what_o doctrine_n it_o be_v that_o he_o make_v our_o agreement_n in_o to_o be_v necessary_a or_o the_o test_n of_o communion_n if_o i_o shall_v separate_v from_o all_o church_n from_o which_o i_o differ_v in_o any_o the_o least_o doctrine_n i_o know_v not_o where_o the_o diocesan_n or_o national_a church_n be_v that_o i_o may_v hold_v communion_n with_o do_v all_o the_o conformist_n agree_v in_o all_o doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v in_o all_o that_o the_o law_n impose_v how_o various_a mutable_a and_o uncertain_a be_v that_o i_o distinguish_v between_o doctrine_n profess_v by_o the_o church_n and_o doctrine_n impose_v on_o i_o to_o profess_v it_o as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o will_v communicate_v with_o a_o church_n that_o have_v twenty_o false_a doctrine_n consistent_a with_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o church_n communion_n as_o to_o the_o second_o i_o will_v not_o know_o profess_v one_o false_a doctrine_n for_o communion_n with_o any_o church_n on_o earth_n do_v not_o the_o nonconformist_n differ_v from_o the_o conformist_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n for_o regulate_a church-order_n and_o worship_n and_o about_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o diocesan_n and_o elder_n and_o about_o parish_n discipline_n do_v not_o we_o now_o differ_v about_o the_o undoubted_a certainty_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o die_v baptize_v infant_n will_v this_o warrant_v a_o separation_n sect._n 2_o 1._o p._n 75._o he_o tell_v we_o very_o confident_o that_o diversity_n of_o circumstantial_a pretence_n for_o separation_n alter_v not_o the_o case_n but_o 1._o it_o be_v true_a that_o if_o twenty_o man_n have_v twenty_o false_a pretence_n for_o separation_n none_o of_o they_o be_v thereby_o justify_v but_o if_o one_o man_n have_v a_o just_a cause_n it_o justify_v he_o i_o name_v very_o many_o just_a and_o unjust_a cause_n in_o my_o plea_n and_o he_o give_v no_o answer_n to_o it_o 2._o be_v they_o such_o circumstance_n before_o name_v oath_n declaration_n subscription_n doctrine_n &_o c_o 3._o what_o if_o the_o law_n shall_v change_v and_o allow_v of_o various_a church_n what_o if_o the_o king_n license_v they_o these_o be_v but_o circumstance_n what_o if_o the_o plague_n drive_v away_o the_o parish_n minister_n what_o if_o the_o church_n be_v burn_v and_o the_o people_n forsake_v will_v no_o such_o circumstance_n make_v other_o assembly_n lawful_a because_o he_o call_v they_o separate_v sect._n 22._o p._n 78._o his_o undertake_n be_v repeat_v he_o be_v certain_a that_o preach_v in_o opposition_n to_o our_o establish_a law_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o nonconformist_n of_o former_a time_n answ_n if_o i_o have_v not_o prove_v the_o contrary_a i_o can_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v english_a man_n but_o 1._o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o that_o
with_o they_o when_o he_o lay_v the_o scene_n a_o hundred_o year_n backward_o or_o as_o far_o off_o as_o new_a england_n let_v he_o know_v then_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o confutation_n of_o his_o historical_a supposition_n 1._o that_o kiderminster_n parish_n have_v but_o about_o three_o thousand_o or_o four_o thousand_o soul_n and_o the_o church_n so_o fit_a with_o five_o gallery_n that_o all_o may_v hear_v but_o his_o parish_n be_v say_v to_o have_v twenty_o thousand_o soul_n of_o which_o not_o four_o thousand_o can_v hear_v 2._o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o kiderminster_n parish_n call_v ridnal_n be_v at_o bewd_o bridge_n end_n and_o two_o mile_n from_o kiderminster_n and_o some_o village_n more_o usual_o be_v mr._n tomb_n his_o hearer_n at_o bewdley_n and_o i_o never_o blame_v they_o 3._o after_o he_o they_o be_v hearer_n and_o communicant_n to_o his_o successor_n mr._n oasland_n and_o he_o take_v the_o pastoral_a care_n of_o they_o that_o desire_v any_o and_o i_o be_v so_o far_o from_o blame_v he_o that_o i_o great_o thank_v he_o and_o we_o be_v far_o from_o disagree_v 4._o though_o mr._n tomb_n and_o i_o differ_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o infant_n baptism_n i_o give_v he_o leave_v yea_o and_o the_o quaker_n too_o in_o the_o public_a church_n many_o hour_n together_o to_o say_v all_o that_o they_o can_v for_o their_o opinion_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o my_o auditor_n and_o none_o of_o they_o ever_o win_v one_o of_o they_o that_o i_o hear_v of_o yet_o the_o dr._n suppose_v some_o great_a danger_n of_o their_o people_n seduction_n if_o they_o hear_v such_o as_o i_o that_o never_o be_v accuse_v of_o false_a doctrine_n 5._o but_o he_o have_v choose_v a_o instance_n yet_o near_o our_o present_a case_n another_o part_n of_o kiderminster_n parish_n be_v near_o three_o mile_n off_o at_o a_o village_n call_v mitton_n where_o at_o the_o chapel_n i_o find_v a_o curate_n call_v mr._n turner_n infamous_a for_o drunkenness_n fight_v live_v on_o unlawful_a marriage_n and_o for_o gross_a ignorance_n i_o try_v he_o and_o perceive_v not_o that_o he_o understand_v much_o of_o the_o creed_n i_o send_v they_o a_o worthy_a preacher_n once_o a_o day_n first_o and_o twice_o after_o and_o declare_v my_o utter_a dissent_n to_o mr._n turner_n ministry_n yet_o because_o some_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v have_v he_o and_o he_o will_v against_o my_o will_n read_v the_o common_a prayer_n to_o they_o once_o a_o day_n i_o hinder_v they_o not_o from_o their_o choice_n but_o they_o go_v on_o 6._o and_o the_o sequester_a vicar_n in_o the_o town_n mr._n dance_n be_v general_o take_v to_o be_v as_o ignorant_a as_o he_o so_o that_o when_o once_o a_o quarter_n he_o go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n his_o own_o wife_n though_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v for_o shame_n go_v out_o of_o church_n yet_o do_v i_o never_o forbid_v he_o to_o preach_v and_o he_o oft_o read_v the_o common_a prayer_n at_o sir_n ralph_n clares_z and_o i_o suppose_v give_v they_o the_o sacrament_n 7._o i_o have_v opportunity_n then_o to_o have_v hinder_v all_o this_o if_o i_o will_v have_v use_v magistrate_n they_o be_v both_o by_o proclamation_n to_o remove_v two_o mile_n off_o but_o neither_o of_o they_o once_o remove_v so_o much_o as_o out_o of_o their_o house_n nor_o do_v i_o desire_v it_o but_o we_o be_v by_o law_n drive_v five_o mile_n off_o 8._o mr._n dance_v have_v forty_o pound_n a_o year_n allow_v he_o and_o mr._n turner_n never_o have_v a_o groat_n of_o his_o ancient_a salary_n diminish_v when_o another_o be_v put_v in_o but_o the_o other_o pay_v otherwise_o but_o we_o ask_v you_o nothing_o for_o assist_v you_o 9_o i_o have_v never_o one_o hundred_o pound_n to_o myself_o and_o therefore_o can_v maintain_v no_o more_o help_n two_o assistant_n i_o have_v but_o have_v you_o no_o more_o to_o maintain_v assistant_n now_o judge_v how_o well_o your_o historical_a instance_n serve_v your_o turn_n and_o beside_o the_o number_n of_o soul_n very_o many_o parish_n be_v so_o wide_a that_o distance_n forbid_v many_o to_o come_v to_o the_o public_a parish_n church_n some_o village_n be_v five_o mile_n some_o four_o and_o many_o three_o mile_n off_o and_o how_o can_v family_n especial_o woman_n child_n and_o the_o age_a and_o especial_o in_o winter_n go_v so_o far_o twice_o or_o once_o a_o day_n and_o must_v all_o these_o forbear_v to_o hear_v or_o to_o worship_n god_n for_o fear_v of_o be_v count_v schismatic_n because_o the_o dr._n appeal_v to_o myself_o i_o serious_o profess_v that_o when_o i_o have_v a_o pastoral_a charge_n which_o be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n i_o will_v have_v be_v very_o thankful_a to_o any_o one_o that_o disser_v no_o more_o than_o the_o dr._n and_o i_o do_v that_o will_v have_v gather_v a_o congregation_n of_o such_o as_o for_o number_n or_o distance_n can_v not_o have_v come_v into_o the_o parish_n church_n and_o the_o case_n of_o distance_n do_v occasion_n the_o honest_a separation_n aforesaid_a though_o the_o case_n of_o number_n do_v not_o yea_o when_o hundred_o desire_a communion_n according_a to_o the_o common_a prayer_n i_o never_o offer_v to_o hinder_v any_o of_o they_o from_o take_v it_o where_o and_o how_o they_o will_v sect._n 14._o p._n 99_o he_o say_v this_n be_v mr._n baxter_n own_o case_n when_o he_o be_v pinch_v with_o the_o point_n of_o separation_n thus_o he_o declare_v that_o his_o hearer_n be_v the_o same_o with_o we_o at_o least_o ten_o or_o twenty_o for_o one_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o what_o such_o mighty_a help_n be_v this_o to_o our_o great_a parish_n what_o colour_n or_o pretence_n be_v there_o from_o the_o largeness_n of_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v preach_v to_o the_o very_a same_o man_n that_o come_v to_o our_o church_n then_o how_o come_v they_o to_o be_v lawful_a when_o few_o or_o none_o of_o those_o many_o thousand_o ever_o come_v to_o speak_v soft_o this_o pretence_n be_v not_o become_v mr._n baxter_n sincerity_n ans_fw-fr what_o hope_v of_o justice_n from_o such_o judge_n or_o what_o hope_v of_o profit_v such_o reader_n by_o dispute_n as_o can_v answer_v such_o as_o this_o themselves_o when_o i_o begin_v to_o preach_v at_o st._n james_n the_o neighbour_n assure_v i_o that_o many_o of_o the_o hearer_n have_v be_v at_o no_o church_n of_o four_o year_n but_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o parish-church_n and_o that_o some_o of_o they_o get_v into_o the_o church_n but_o rare_o and_o some_o like_v it_o not_o so_o well_o as_o to_o be_v forward_a seeker_n when_o i_o be_v drive_v thence_o i_o preach_v a_o while_n where_o mr._n wadsworth_n be_v in_o southwark_n there_o be_v some_o people_n that_o have_v adhere_v to_o their_o old_a eject_v worthy_a pastor_n and_o some_o that_o i_o know_v not_o since_o than_o i_o preach_v once_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n in_o another_o man_n pulpit_n as_o near_o st._n james_n as_o i_o can_v and_o the_o same_o person_n that_o hear_v i_o there_o do_v many_o of_o they_o come_v hither_o and_o some_o other_o of_o all_o who_o i_o know_v very_o few_o but_o by_o report_n on_o thursdays_n i_o preach_v a_o lecture_n in_o another_o man_n pulpit_n to_o person_n of_o who_o i_o know_v not_o many_o but_o report_n say_v that_o some_o of_o they_o join_v not_o ordinary_o with_o the_o parish_n minister_n and_o some_o do_v and_o most_o judge_n it_o lawful_a and_o sometime_o but_o seldom_o practice_v it_o and_o those_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o that_o prefer_v the_o nonconformist_n ministry_n and_o some_o that_o find_v the_o parish_n church_n crowd_v and_o many_o present_a be_v out_o of_o hear_v do_v seldom_o go_v thither_o though_o they_o be_v of_o the_o parish_n church_n and_o dissent_v not_o from_o their_o ministry_n or_o worship_n some_o say_v we_o have_v no_o seat_n and_o can_v stand_v some_o say_v we_o can_v hear_v the_o minister_n some_o say_v thousand_o stay_n away_o that_o can_v get_v no_o room_n and_o will_v go_v no_o whither_o else_o and_o when_o we_o can_v go_v elsewhere_o we_o will_v not_o crowd_v in_o first_o to_o keep_v they_o out_o that_o so_o much_o need_v other_o must_v be_v out_o if_o we_o be_v in_o these_o be_v your_o own_o church-member_n they_o hear_v you_o sometime_o but_o seldom_o other_o that_o hear_v you_o constant_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n will_v think_v that_o a_o sermon_n on_o the_o week_n day_n may_v be_v needful_a to_o they_o whatever_o you_o think_v or_o say_v against_o it_o and_o be_v it_o inconsistent_a with_o sincerity_n here_o to_o plead_v the_o people_n necessity_n it_o be_v well_o that_o our_o sincerity_n be_v not_o to_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o your_o judgement_n do_v i_o say_v that_o my_o hearer_n be_v constant_a hearer_n in_o your_o church_n can_v you_o persuade_v the_o world_n
1._o the_o eunuch_n baptize_v in_o his_o travail_n acts._n 9_o be_v only_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a 2._o those_o that_o be_v convert_v by_o frumentius_n and_o edesius_n when_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v first_o convert_v in_o any_o infidel_n or_o heathen_a land_n before_o any_o church_n be_v form_v 3._o those_o that_o by_o shipwreck_n be_v cast_v on_o heathen_a country_n where_o no_o church_n be_v 4._o traveller_n that_o go_v from_o country_n to_o country_n as_o lythgow_n do_v nineteen_o year_n and_o other_o many_o and_o i_o think_v he_o unhappy_o name_v jerusalem_n where_o traveller_n come_v that_o be_v of_o no_o fix_a church_n unless_o he_o in_o that_o also_o be_v a_o superindependant_a and_o think_v that_o man_n may_v be_v many_o year_n member_n of_o a_o church_n many_o hundred_o mile_n off_o which_o they_o have_v no_o personal_a communion_n with_o 5._o merchant_n and_o factor_n who_o be_v call_v to_o dwell_v long_o among_o infidel_n where_o be_v no_o church_n 6._o ambassador_n who_o by_o their_o prince_n be_v send_v to_o reside_v among_o such_o much_o of_o their_o life_n 7._o wanderer_n that_o have_v no_o fix_a habitation_n as_o many_o pedlar_n and_o other_o poor_a wander_a tradesman_n and_o loose_a beggar_n that_o have_v no_o dwelling_n 8._o those_o that_fw-mi live_v among_o papist_n or_o any_o other_o christian_n who_o impose_v some_o sin_n as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n 9_o those_o that_o live_v among_o such_o christian_n as_o have_v no_o true_a pastor_n who_o be_v constitutive_a part_n of_o particular_a church_n some_o be_v incapable_a through_o insufficiency_n some_o by_o heresy_n and_o some_o for_o want_v of_o a_o true_a call_n such_o as_o by_o mr_n dodwells_n doctrine_n most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v for_o want_v of_o uninterrupted_a rrue_a episcopal_a ordination_n 10._o those_o who_o be_v subject_n to_o such_o as_o permit_v they_o not_o to_o be_v fix_v member_n as_o wife_n hinder_v by_o husband_n child_n by_o parent_n and_o some_o subject_n violent_o hinder_v by_o prince_n who_o yet_o allow_v they_o transient_a communion_n and_o very_o a_o man_n will_v think_v by_o the_o write_n of_o many_o conformist_n that_o they_o take_v it_o for_o a_o duty_n to_o obey_v a_o prince_n in_o such_o a_o case_n 11._o those_o who_o live_v where_o church-corruption_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o to_o make_v transient_a communion_n unlawful_a but_o so_o great_a as_o to_o make_v fix_v communion_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o culpable_a consent_n if_o i_o come_v in_o travel_n to_o a_o church_n of_o stranger_n i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o examine_v what_o their_o discipline_n be_v what_o their_o life_n be_v or_o how_o their_o pastor_n be_v call_v but_o where_o i_o be_o fix_v i_o be_o more_o bind_v to_o know_v these_o and_o if_o i_o find_v they_o exclude_v discipline_n live_v wicked_o and_o have_v unlawful_a pastor_n i_o may_v in_o some_o case_n be_v a_o partaker_n of_o the_o sin_n if_o i_o fix_v among_o they_o 12._o they_o that_o live_v in_o a_o time_n and_o place_n of_o schism_n and_o distraction_n strive_v who_o shall_v prevail_v and_o condemn_v each_o other_o all_o follow_v several_a faction_n and_o need_v reconciler_n it_o may_v for_o a_o time_n become_v in_o prudence_n the_o duty_n of_o peacemaker_n to_o own_v no_o faction_n nor_o to_o be_v more_o of_o one_o church_n than_o of_o another_o while_o he_o see_v that_o it_o will_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a and_o those_o that_o wait_v in_o hope_n as_o the_o nonconformist_n now_o do_v to_o see_v whether_o their_o ruler_n will_v restore_v they_o to_o reform_a parish_n church_n may_v at_o once_o in_o prudence_n find_v it_o needful_a neither_o to_o fix_v as_o member_n in_o some_o parish_n church_n till_o reform_v in_o the_o teacher_n at_o least_o nor_o to_o seem_v to_o be_v separatist_n by_o gather_v new_a church_n in_o none_o of_o all_o these_o case_n be_v a_o man_n unchristened_a nor_o schismatical_a for_o be_v no_o fix_a member_n of_o any_o church_n beside_o the_o universal_a and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o ill_a hap_n of_o these_o man_n common_o to_o strike_v themselves_o i_o doubt_v they_o will_v prove_v grotius_n himself_o no_o christian_n by_o this_o rule_n who_o for_o many_o year_n before_o he_o die_v they_o say_v join_v with_o no_o particular_a church_n as_o a_o fix_a member_n and_o i_o know_v not_o well_o what_o particular_a church_n they_o make_v the_o king_n a_o member_n of_o sect._n 2._o to_o his_o question_n pag._n 3._o be_v we_o not_o baptise_a into_o this_o church_n and_o do_v you_o not_o renounce_v membership_n this_o be_v scarce_o a_o civility_n i_o answer_v 1._o this_o church_n which_o church_n do_v you_o mean_v i_o be_v not_o baptise_a into_o st._n giles_n nor_o st._n andrew_n parish_n church_n but_o into_o one_o above_o a_o hundred_o mile_n off_o and_o yet_o my_o removal_n make_v i_o no_o culpable_a separatist_n or_o do_v he_o mean_v this_o diocesan_n church_n no_o i_o be_v baptise_a in_o the_o diocese_n of_o lichfield_n do_v he_o mean_v this_o national_a church_n as_o it_o be_v suppose_v a_o political_a body_n constitute_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a govern_n and_o govern_v part_n he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o church_n of_o england_n but_o that_o it_o infer_v popery_n to_o assert_v such_o but_o if_o he_o equivocate_v here_o and_o mean_v not_o by_o a_o church_n as_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o either_o a_o christian_n kingdom_n or_o a_o agree_v association_n of_o many_o church_n i_o be_o still_o a_o fix_a member_n of_o such_o a_o kingdom_n and_o of_o such_o a_o association_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o church_n and_o christian_a communion_n 2._o but_o baptism_n as_o such_o enter_v i_o only_o into_o the_o universal_a church_n much_o less_o do_v it_o fix_v i_o in_o any_o other_o i_o be_v baptise_a where_o i_o be_v to_o stay_v but_o a_o little_a while_n and_o this_o phrase_n of_o be_v baptise_a into_o our_o church_n be_v to_o i_o of_o ill_a sound_n or_o intimation_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v interpretative_o thereby_o engage_v to_o the_o pope_n i_o be_v baptize_v in_o a_o parish_n and_o in_o a_o diocese_n and_o in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n but_o not_o so_o into_o they_o as_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o continue_v under_o that_o priest_n or_o bishop_n or_o in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o my_o baptism_n i_o hope_v do_v not_o oblige_v i_o to_o every_o canon_n ceremony_n form_n or_o sin_n of_o the_o associate_v church_n in_o england_n abusive_o by_o he_o call_v one_o church_n 3._o and_o unhappy_o it_o be_v not_o mere_a independency_n that_o he_o be_v still_o plead_v for_o but_o some_o extreme_n which_o the_o moderate_a independent_n disclaim_v viz._n that_o a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n be_v so_o tie_v to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o remove_v to_o another_o without_o their_o consent_n and_o be_o i_o so_o tie_v to_o what_o to_o parochial_a or_o to_o the_o diocesan_n or_o to_o the_o association_n of_o english_a church_n if_o it_o have_v be_v to_o the_o species_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o their_o thing_n call_v by_o they_o indifferent_n specify_v they_o sect._n 3_o p._n 111_o 112._o he_o yet_o more_o plead_v as_o for_o separation_n why_o then_o above_o once_o or_o twice_o why_o shall_v i_o so_o countenance_v defective_a worship_n and_o not_o rather_o reprove_v it_o by_o total_a forbearance_n of_o communion_n etc._n etc._n answ_n my_o reason_n i_o tell_v he_o because_o the_o accident_n may_v continue_v which_o make_v it_o a_o duty_n but_o i_o can_v hinder_v other_o from_o yield_v to_o his_o argument_n let_v he_o make_v his_o best_a of_o they_o only_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o yet_o 1._o that_o if_o he_o lie_v his_o cause_n on_o this_o that_o their_o parochial_a or_o diocesan_n church_n be_v not_o defective_a 2._o or_o that_o the_o defect_n can_v by_o other_o be_v avoid_v he_o will_v quite_o mar_v his_o matter_n and_o undo_v all_o by_o overdo_v 3._o and_o if_o he_o indeed_o think_v that_o all_o defective_a church_n must_v be_v forsake_v he_o will_v be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a schismatic_n in_o the_o world_n but_o who_o can_v reconcile_v this_o with_o the_o scope_n of_o his_o whole_a book_n sect._n 4._o p._n 112._o he_o say_v here_o be_v no_o bound_n set_v to_o people_n fancy_n of_o pure_a administration_n answ_n have_v i_o so_o oft_o and_o copious_o name_v the_o bound_n and_o now_o be_v the_o answer_n hear_v be_v none_o be_v there_o none_o in_o all_o the_o same_o book_n he_o cit_v 2._o scripture_n be_v their_o bound_n as_o he_o well_o open_v in_o his_o desence_n of_o bishop_n laud._n sect._n 5._o p._n 114._o he_o complain_v of_o my_o leave_v out_o the_o best_a part_n of_o his_o argument_n viz._n the_o people_n may_v go_v
more_o such_o may_v have_v deceive_v a_o man_n that_o judge_v by_o his_o word_n and_o his_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o preach_v to_o they_o because_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o hear_v what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o this_o if_o not_o silence_v we_o sect._n 34._o p._n 140._o the_o next_o crime_n be_v plea_n p._n 42._o as_o long_o as_o they_o suppose_v the_o term_n of_o our_o communion_n to_o be_v sinful_a they_o say_v the_o schism_n do_v not_o lie_v on_o those_o that_o separate_v but_o on_o those_o that_o do_v impose_v such_o term_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v lawful_o separate_v from_o such_o imposer_n ans_fw-fr it_o be_v hard_a to_o know_v what_o word_n to_o use_v to_o detect_v all_o these_o historical_a untruth_n without_o be_v think_v passionate_a 1._o i_o never_o say_v that_o suppose_v they_o sinful_a will_v justify_v a_o false_a supposer_n but_o have_v oft_o say_v the_o clean_a contrary_n their_o suppose_n be_v of_o his_o forge_n 2._o i_o say_v not_o the_o schism_n do_v not_o lie_v on_o those_o that_o separate_a but_o only_o that_o its_o schism_n in_o the_o imposer_n this_o also_o be_v his_o fiction_n 3._o and_o i_o say_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o may_v lawful_o separate_v from_o such_o imposer_n but_o all_o reader_n will_v not_o stay_v to_o find_v out_o his_o forgery_n but_o how_o much_o of_o this_o he_o say_v once_o himself_o see_v in_o my_o chap._n 1._o sect._n 49._o but_o here_o he_o come_v to_o some_o close_a distinction_n which_o shall_v have_v go_v before_o between_o term_n of_o communion_n plain_o and_o in_o themselves_o sinful_a and_o such_o as_o be_v only_o fancy_v to_o be_v so_o through_o prejudice_n or_o wilful_a ignorance_n or_o error_n of_o conscience_n ans_fw-fr what_o a_o deal_n of_o labour_n may_v he_o have_v spare_v himself_o and_o we_o if_o he_o have_v here_o fix_v the_o controversy_n in_o the_o beginning_n we_o thankful_o accept_v your_o late_a distinction_n we_o ever_o desire_v here_o to_o put_v it_o to_o the_o issue_n if_o it_o be_v through_o prejudice_n wilful_a ignorance_n or_o error_n that_o we_o judge_v conformity_n a_o sin_n not_o only_a separation_n but_o nonconformity_n be_v a_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v not_o prove_v some_o part_n of_o conformity_n for_o one_o be_v enough_o to_o be_v plain_o sinful_a which_o be_v impose_v as_o condition_n of_o our_o ministerial_a communion_n and_o somewhat_o impose_v on_o the_o people_n as_o condition_n 〈◊〉_d all_o that_o part_n of_o your_o communion_n which_o i_o ever_o dissuade_v they_o from_o let_v the_o blame_n be_v we_o sect._n 35._o he_o pass_v next_o to_o they_o that_o deal_v more_o ingenuous_o than_o i_o in_o own_v separation_n and_o then_o return_v to_o i_o p._n 151._o and_o he_o over_o and_o over_o repeat_v his_o false_a accusation_n that_o i_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o they_o occasional_o but_o not_o as_o church_n as_o think_v they_o want_v a_o essential_a part_n viz._n a_o pastor_n with_o episcopal_a power_n but_o as_o oratory_n and_o so_o that_o i_o renounce_v communion_n with_o their_o church_n as_o church_n answ_n if_o these_o untruth_n have_v be_v make_v without_o evidence_n only_o and_o not_o also_o against_o evidence_n they_o have_v be_v the_o more_o excusable_a in_o a_o man_n of_o consideration_n but_o now_o they_o be_v not_o so_o when_o i_o have_v so_o often_o declare_v that_o i_o take_v the_o parish_n church_n that_o have_v true_a pastor_n for_o true_a govern_v church_n and_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v true_a bishop_n episcopos_fw-la gregis_fw-la whether_o the_o diocesan_n will_v or_o not_o because_o god_n will_v and_o not_o the_o invester_n institute_v their_o office_n and_o measure_v their_o power_n and_o the_o people_n show_v their_o consent_n by_o constant_a communion_n sect._n 36._o then_o because_o i_o never_o gather_v a_o church_n nor_o baptize_v any_o in_o 20_o year_n nor_o give_v the_o sacrament_n in_o 18_o he_o will_v know_v what_o church_n i_o have_v be_v of_o all_o this_o time_n and_o he_o suppose_v of_o no_o church_n ans_fw-fr i_o think_v he_o have_v do_v with_o this_o before_o but_o he_o think_v it_o a_o advantage_n not_o to_o be_v so_o easy_o let_v go_v will_v he_o know_v 1._o what_o my_o thought_n be_v 2._o or_o my_o church-covenant_n 3._o or_o my_o actual_a communion_n he_o shall_v know_v all_o 1._o i_o think_v divers_a minister_n where_o i_o live_v true_a pastor_n and_o the_o church_n true_a church_n i_o can_v say_v so_o of_o every_o curate_n 2._o i_o make_v no_o covenant_n with_o any_o of_o they_o if_o i_o have_v mr._n cheny_n will_v have_v condemn_v i_o of_o atheism_n infidelity_n and_o what_o not_o 3._o with_o divers_a of_o they_o i_o go_v constant_o to_o the_o liturgy_n sermon_n and_o sacrament_n as_o with_o true_a church_n with_o some_o of_o they_o i_o only_o join_v in_o prayer_n and_o hear_n i_o hear_v dr._n rieves_n till_o he_o cause_v i_o to_o be_v send_v to_o jail_n and_o then_o i_o can_v not_o and_o though_o i_o be_v accuse_v by_o many_o for_o hear_v a_o swearer_n i_o tell_v they_o he_o swear_v not_o in_o the_o pulpit_n i_o hear_v his_o poor_a curate_n constant_o when_o i_o be_v accuse_v for_o hear_v a_o drunkard_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v not_o drink_v in_o the_o pulpit_n but_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o i_o communicate_v also_o with_o some_o nonconformist_n and_o now_o account_v i_o of_o a_o church_n or_o no_o church_n as_o you_o please_v i_o doubt_v you_o be_v renew_v the_o independent_a question_n with_o i_o which_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o dispute_v 1._o qu._n whether_o a_o ordain_a minister_n must_v be_v a_o private_a member_n of_o another_o man_n church_n q._n 2._o whether_o when_o a_o nonresident_a dean_n leave_v his_o parish_n to_o a_o ignorant_a drunken_a curate_n the_o parish_n church_n be_v essentiate_v by_o its_o relation_n to_o the_o resident_n curate_n or_o the_o nonresident_a dean_n q._n 3._o whether_o a_o minister_n not_o degrade_v but_o silence_v live_v in_o such_o a_o parish_n be_v bind_v to●ke_v that_o curate_n for_o one_o that_o have_v the_o pastoral_a charge_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o a●_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o commit_v his_o soul_n to_o his_o pastoral_n conduct_v in_o personal_a private_a and_o public_a office_n 4._o but_o i_o will_v ask_v the_o dean_n himself_o whether_o a_o man_n may_v not_o be_v a_o fix_a member_n of_o two_o or_o three_o church_n at_o once_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o quaere_fw-la be_v 1._o because_o by_o they_o a_o man_n may_v be_v the_o sixed_a pastor_n of_o two_o or_o three_o parish_n church_n at_o once_o and_o a_o integral_a member_n of_o many_o be_v not_o so_o hard_a a_o case_n as_o to_o be_v a_o constitutive_a regent_n part_n of_o many_o 2._o because_o a_o man_n may_v have_v two_o house_n in_o two_o parish_n at_o once_o as_o many_o londoner_n have_v half_a their_o family_n at_o a_o near_a country_n house_n and_o half_a at_o a_o city_n house_n and_o be_v themselves_o part_n of_o the_o week_n or_o day_n at_o one_o and_o part_n at_o the_o other_o and_o they_o make_v covenant_n with_o neither_o but_o what_o actual_a communion_n intimate_v q._n ●_o and_o if_o so_o why_o may_v not_o i_o at_o once_o be_v judge_v a_o member_n of_o two_o church_n at_o once_o so_o far_o as_o i_o communicate_v oft_o with_o both_o i_o therefore_o answer_v his_o question_n further_o what_o church_n i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o 1._o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n universal_a church_n be_v that_o none_o and_o yet_o be_v in_o the_o creed_n 2._o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n if_o you_o will_v call_v that_o one_o because_o associate_v in_o one_o reform_a religion_n 3._o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o as_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o as_o the_o church_n in_o england_n agree_v in_o the_o christian_a reform_a religion_n 4_o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o provincial_a church_n of_o canterbury_n so_o far_o as_o live_v peaceable_o in_o it_o and_o submit_v both_o to_o such_o power_n as_o they_o have_v from_o the_o king_n as_o magistrate_n and_o a_o mere_a general_n help_v instruct_v care_n of_o many_o church_n can_v make_v i_o 5._o so_o far_o also_o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o diocesan_n church_n where_o i_o live_v 6._o and_o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o some_o parochial_a church_n so_o far_o as_o constant_a communion_n can_v make_v or_o prove_v i_o and_o of_o other_o two_o at_z once_o so_o far_o as_o partial_a and_o movable_a communion_n can_v prove_v i_o if_o this_o will_v not_o satisfy_v you_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o and_o oft_o to_o some_o independent_n that_o many_o man_n be_v under_o no_o obligation_n to_o be_v fix_v member_n of_o any_o parish_n church_n whether_o the_o
presbyterian_a national_a church_n be_v one_o as_o head_v by_o the_o general_n assembly_n 10._o a_o episcopal_a national_a church_n be_v one_o either_o as_o head_v by_o one_o national_a bishop_n or_o else_o by_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n aristocratical_o or_o else_o by_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n aristocratical_o all_o these_o that_o be_v constitute_v of_o one_o regent_n and_o a_o subdite_fw-la part_n be_v call_v church_n in_o a_o political_a proper_a sense_n and_o not_o only_o equivocal_o now_o the_o question_n be_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o national_a church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o doctor_n say_v page_n 287._o 1._o that_o the_o society_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v count_v a_o true_a catholic_n church_n from_o their_o union_n and_o consent_n in_o some_o common_a thing_n and_o so_o be_v we_o etc._n etc._n answ_n but_o in_o what_o common_a thing_n not_o in_o one_o bible_n for_o so_o may_v heretic_n much_o less_o in_o one_o liturgy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o consent_n in_o one_o govern_v head_n it_o make_v no_o proper_a church_n 2._o he_o suppose_v a_o agreement_n in_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o under_o the_o same_o government_n and_o discipline_n answ_n that_o be_v right_a but_o what_o government_n be_v it_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a the_o first_o be_v no_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o proper_a church_n if_o it_o be_v the_o late_a be_v it_o one_o in_o specie_fw-la or_o in_fw-la individu●_fw-la politico_fw-la not_o the_o former_a for_o a_o 100_o episcopal_a church_n in_o several_a nation_n may_v have_v one_o species_n of_o government_n as_o many_o kingdom_n may_v have_v it_o be_v therefore_o the_o late_a that_o be_v all_o my_o question_n which_o be_v the_o churchhead_n he_o say_v as_o several_a family_n make_v one_o kingdom_n so_o several_a lesser_a church_n make_v one_o national_a answ_n true_o if_o that_o national_a church_n have_v one_o constitutive_a head_n as_o a_o family_n have_v it_o be_v no_o family_n without_o a_o pater_n or_o mater_fw-la familias_fw-la and_o no_o govern_v proper_a church_n without_o governor_n and_o there_o be_v no_o governor_n where_o there_o be_v no_o supreme_a in_o his_o place_n and_o kind_n for_o inferior_n have_v all_o their_o power_n from_o the_o supreme_a there_o be_v no_o universal_a supreme_a but_o god_n but_o the_o king_n be_v subordinate_o the_o supreme_a in_o his_o kingdom_n in_o respect_n to_o inferior_n and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o other_o govern_v society_n he_o add_v the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n comprehend_v the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o people_n of_o whole_a city_n and_o so_o may_v be_v extend_v to_o many_o city_n unite_v under_o one_o civil_a government_n and_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o religion_n answ_n 1._o if_o the_o question_n be_v only_a de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la we_o grant_v that_o civil_a court_n even_o of_o heathen_n be_v usual_o by_o writer_n call_v ecclesia_fw-la and_o so_o be_v any_o assembly_n if_o this_o be_v all_o you_o mean_v speak_v out_o 2._o many_o nation_n may_v agree_v in_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o religion_n yea_o so_o all_o christian_n do_v do_v this_o constitute_v national_a church_n 3._o one_o civil_a government_n be_v of_o another_o species_n and_o not_o essential_a but_o accidental_a to_o a_o church_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o constitute_v or_o individuate_v it_o one_o justice_n of_o peace_n or_o mayor_n in_o a_o christian_a corporation_n do_v not_o make_v it_o one_o parish_n church_n but_o if_o this_o be_v all_o your_o meaning_n speak_v out_o we_o grant_v de_fw-fr re_fw-mi a_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o contend_v not_o the_o nomine_fw-la if_o you_o call_v it_o a_o church_n §_o 3._o page_n 297._o ●_o as_o to_o the_o difference_n of_o a_o national_a church_n and_o kingdom_n he_o grant_v what_o we_o desire_v confess_v the_o difference_n but_o ask_v whence_o come_v all_o this_o zeal_n now_o against_o a_o national_a church_n answ_n a_o untrue_a insinuation_n 1._o to_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v be_v untrue_o call_v zeal_n against_o it_o 2._o and_o agree_v with_o you_o in_o the_o description_n be_v no_o zeal_n against_o it_o he_o add_v the_o presbyterian_o and_o mr._n hudson_n write_v for_o it_o answ_n mr._n hudson_n be_v a_o conformist_n and_o the_o presbyterian_o tell_v you_o what_o they_o mean_v a_o christian_a nation_n of_o particular_a church_n govern_v by_o one_o general_n assembly_n as_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a government_n whether_o this_o be_v just_a or_o unjust_a be_v now_o none_o of_o our_o question_n i_o have_v oft_o tell_v what_o i_o think_v of_o it_o do_v you_o also_o tell_v we_o which_o be_v your_o national_a church-power_n and_o i_o have_v do_v be_v you_o loath_a to_o be_v understand_v §_o 4._o but_o page_n 299._o he_o come_v to_o his_o plain_a answer_n viz._n 1._o the_n national_a church_n of_o england_n diffusive_a be_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_n in_o this_o nation_n consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o people_n agree_v in_o that_o faith_n government_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o now_o he_o continue_v his_o wonder_n at_o those_o who_o so_o confident_o say_v they_o can_v tell_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n answ_n yea_o your_o wonder_n may_v increase_v that_o i_o less_o and_o less_o understand_v it_o if_o you_o do_v not_o after_o tell_v we_o better_a ●●an_z in_o this_o unhappy_a definition_n 1._o be_v this_o call_v the_o church_n diffusive_a one_o govern_v body_n politic_a if_o not_o it_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o sense_n in_o question_n and_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v with_o you_o for_o a_o equivocal_a name_n 2._o do_v you_o mean_v by_o government_n agree_v in_o 1._o the_o civil_a government_n 2._o or_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n several_o 3._o or_o one_o government_n of_o all_o the_o national_a church_n 1._o the_o first_o make_v it_o no_o church_n in_o the_o sense_n in_o question_n 2._o the_o second_o make_v it_o no_o church_n but_o a_o association_n of_o many_o church_n such_o as_o a_o thousand_o independent_a church_n may_v make_v or_o the_o church_n of_o many_o kingdom_n many_o family_n associate_v be_v no_o city_n or_o one_o rule_v society_n if_o they_o agree_v in_o no_o common_a governor_n but_o only_o their_o several_a family_n governor_n many_o city_n associate_v be_v no_o commonwealth_n if_o they_o agree_v not_o in_o one_o supreme_a power_n it_o be_v no_o political_a body_n without_o one_o common_a governor_n natural_a or_o collective_a monarchical_a aristocratical_a or_o democratical_a and_o what_o be_v it_o of_o worship_n establish_v by_o law_n that_o individuate_n your_o church_n if_o all_o th●●_n the_o law_n have_v establish_v 1._o your_o church_n have_v oft_o change_v its_o very_a be_v and_o may_v do_v at_o every_o parliament_n 2._o and_o the_o church_n be_v small_a and_o unknown_a if_o all_o that_o differ_v in_o any_o point_n establish_v be_v no_o part_n of_o it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o all_o establish_v who_o know_v by_o this_o definition_n what_o it_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o very_a matter_n of_o your_o church_n so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o definition_n which_o neither_o notifi_v matter_n or_o form_n §_o 5._o next_o he_o answer_v the_o question_n how_o all_o the_o congregation_n in_o england_n make_v up_o this_o one_o church_n and_o answer_v by_o unity_n of_o consent_n as_o all_o particular_a church_n make_v one_o catholic_n answ_n consent_v to_o what_o 1._o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o one_o common_a government_n it_o be_v no_o govern_v church_n as_o one_o 2._o do_v he_o think_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n consent_v not_o to_o one_o govern_v head_n christ_n and_o do_v any_o thing_n else_o make_v they_o formal_o one_o politic_a body_n or_o church_n this_o be_v ill_a doctrine_n §_o 6._o question_v how_o come_v it_o to_o be_v one_o national_a church_n say_v he_o i_o say_v because_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n in_o parliament_n as_o other_o law_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v answ_n whether_o how_o come_v it_o speak_v of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n or_o the_o formal_a or_o what_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o know_v so_o singular_a be_v his_o logical_a notion_n but_o the_o first_o be_v most_o likely_a and_o then_o 1._o the_o question_n be_v still_o unanswered_a what_o be_v the_o one_o common_a govern_v power_n in_o the_o church_n which_o this_o parliament_n consent_n have_v ●●t_n up_o he_o know_v this_o be_v the_o question_n 2._o and_o if_o it_o be_v by_o parliament_n consent_n how_o old_a be_v your_o church_n what_o parliament_n first_o make_v it_o it_o be_v not_o so_o old_a as_o luther_n be_v it_o no_o old_a than_o the_o liturgy_n or_o canon_n 3._o do_v it_o die_v and_o live_v again_o as_o oft_o as_o parliament_n change_v it_o if_o the_o corruption_n of_o
man_n that_o thus_o make_v you_o agent_n for_o a_o pope_n 3._o do_v this_o political_a description_n of_o parochial_a diocesane_n provincial_a patriarchal_a church_n also_o bring_v in_o popery_n 4._o then_o either_o our_o archbishop_n have_v no_o power_n or_o they_o have_v it_o from_o no_o superior_a or_o else_o they_o infer_v a_o pope_n 5._o i_o again_o tell_v the_o doctor_n as_o i_o do_v mr._n cheny_n it_o be_v disingenuous_a to_o say_v this_o to_o i_o when_o i_o have_v write_v so_o much_o against_o johnson_n the_o priest_n in_o my_o first_o and_o special_o my_o second_o answer_n which_o none_o reply_v to_o without_o any_o confutation_n or_o notice_n of_o it_o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o christ_n catholic_n church_n have_v himself_o for_o a_o essential_a head_n sometime_o visible_a on_o earth_n leave_v visible_a law_n and_o now_o visible_a to_o the_o courtier_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v visible_o to_o judge_v all_o and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o indeed_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mr._n dodwell_n and_o many_o such_o hold_n who_o deny_v that_o the_o power_n flow_v immediate_o from_o christ_n law_n or_o charter_n to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o from_o the_o ordainer_n or_o elector_n who_o do_v but_o determine_v of_o the_o receiver_n and_o invest_v he_o than_o all_o the_o doctor_n in_o england_n can_v answer_v the_o digression_n cap._n 14._o of_o the_o book_n call_v the_o catholic_n hierarchy_n prove_v that_o such_o a_o prelatical_a subordination_n of_o church_n infer_v a_o pope_n but_o i_o have_v full_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o that_o inference_n as_o to_o we_o but_o remember_v that_o the_o doctor_n and_o i_o be_v agree_v that_o a_o nation_n consent_v in_o a_o association_n of_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v call_v a_o national_a church_n equivocal_o though_o it_o can_v make_v no_o law_n unless_o its_o consent_n also_o set_v up_o a_o supreme_a church-government_n meet_v agreement_n be_v not_o law_n §_o 16._o he_o next_o will_v make_v the_o unwary_a reader_n think_v that_o he_o answer_v my_o question_n 1._o what_o be_v the_o same_o rule_n that_o all_o must_v walk_v by_o viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n 2._o but_o our_o church_n require_v conformity_n to_o the_o rule_v appoint_v by_o it_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n answ_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o scripture_n than_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a rule_n but_o part_n the_o fundamental_a part_n 2._o which_o do_v paul_n mean_v be_v your_o church_n rule_n then_o make_v 3._o do_v your_o church_n require_v this_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la or_o but_o ad_fw-la melius_fw-la esse_fw-la if_o the_o first_o all_o canon-breaker_n be_v dismember_v and_o be_v that_o according_a to_o god_n word_n if_o the_o late_a why_o be_o not_o i_o of_o your_o church_n 4._o but_o how_o come_v that_o church_n to_o command_v and_o bind_v which_o have_v no_o such_o rule_v power_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o people_n consent_n to_o the_o pastoral_n and_o church-relation_n §_o 1._o page_n 307._o say_v the_o dean_n the_o next_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v the_o interest_n and_o power_n of_o the_o people_n as_o to_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o pastor_n for_o want_v of_o which_o great_a complaint_n be_v make_v mr._n baxter_n be_v very_o tragical_a on_o this_o argument_n and_o keep_v not_o within_o tolerable_a bound_n of_o discretion_n in_o plead_v the_o people_n cause_n against_o magistrate_n and_o patron_n and_o law_n answ_n 1._o that_o be_v tolerable_a to_o some_o man_n which_o other_o can_v bear_v silken_a ear_n must_v have_v soft_a word_n the_o land_n can_v bear_v all_o his_o word_n be_v a_o old_a complaint_n and_o speak_n please_a thing_n prophecy_n deceit_n be_v a_o old_a mandate_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o must_v judge_n whether_o our_o preach_v and_o worship_v god_n be_v tolerable_a and_o must_v write_v we_o down_o the_o word_n which_o we_o must_v say_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n or_o not_o be_v tolerate_v do_v also_o think_v themselves_o the_o meet_a judge_n whether_o our_o indiscretion_n be_v intolerable_a 2._o but_o let_v we_o try_v whether_o he_o state_n this_o controversy_n any_o more_o logical_o or_o true_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o whether_o he_o intimate_v not_o hurtful_a though_o tolerable_a untruth_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o crooked_a insinuation_n to_o put_v the_o word_n power_n instead_o of_o right_n and_o liberty_n as_o if_o power_n of_o consent_v in_o the_o people_n and_o power_n of_o ruler_n be_v univocal_a and_o not_o equivocal_a term_n but_o this_o be_v tolerable_a for_o experience_n have_v convince_v i_o how_o little_a logical_a strictness_n be_v from_o this_o doctor_n to_o be_v expect_v i_o doubt_v lest_o next_o as_o some_o man_n instead_o of_o learning_n maintain_v their_o reputation_n by_o deride_v it_o we_o may_v expect_v some_o such_o defence_n of_o the_o ●_z logic_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o disputer_n of_o this_o world_n who_o deceive_v man_n by_o vain_a philosophy_n 2._o and_o the_o word_n choice_n instead_o of_o consent_n be_v somewhat_o more_o crooked_a for_o choice_n usual_o include_v the_o first_o nominate_v vote_n and_o he_o know_v that_o i_o plead_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o no_o more_o than_o the_o church_n consent_n though_o it_o be_v subsequent_a to_o the_o choice_n of_o magistrate_n or_o patron_n 3._o but_o the_o next_o be_v worse_a that_o i_o plead_v the_o people_n cause_n against_o magistrate_n patron_n and_o law_n when_o i_o do_v but_o desire_v their_o conjunction_n §_o 2._o his_o repetition_n call_v i_o tedious_o to_o repeat_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n a_o business_n quite_o below_o he_o i._o i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o god_n have_v not_o make_v either_o magistrate_n or_o people_n the_o judge_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v a_o minister_n of_o christ_n in_o general_a but_o the_o ordainer_n and_o the_o person_n himself_o conjunct_a this_o be_v evident_a 1._o from_o scripture_n instance_n of_o all_o that_o be_v ordain_v 2._o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n 1._o who_o be_v suppose_v so_o fit_a to_o judge_v as_o man_n and_o senior_n of_o the_o same_o office_n who_o but_o physician_n be_v fit_a to_o judge_v who_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v a_o license_v physician_n and_o who_o but_o philosopher_n judge_n of_o graduate_n and_o professor_n in_o philosophy_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v make_v i_o a_o minister_n against_o my_o will_n nor_o know_v i_o to_o be_v fit_a if_o i_o know_v myself_o to_o be_v unfit_a §_o 3._o ii_o i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o the_o supreme_a civil_a governor_n be_v the_o judge_n who_o he_o must_v countenance_v maintain_v and_o tolerate_v the_o proof_n be_v easy_a 1._o because_o to_o do_v it_o be_v his_o work_n and_o every_o man_n must_v be_v a_o discern_a judge_n of_o his_o own_o work_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v a_o public_a act_n of_o government_n and_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a public_a judge_n therein_o §_o 4._o iii_o i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o the_o disposal_n of_o the_o tithe_n and_o temple_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o patron_n by_o his_o grant_n but_o with_o these_o bound_n 1._o his_o power_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o under_o christ_n and_o limit_v by_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o have_v no_o power_n against_o he_o nor_o to_o cross_v his_o law_n or_o to_o contradict_v his_o end_n 2._o if_o the_o tithe_n and_o temple_n be_v give_v only_o for_o public_a teacher_n of_o catechuman_n or_o for_o mere_a lecturer_n the_o magistrate_n must_v dispose_v of_o they_o to_o such_o as_o be_v capable_a of_o that_o office_n 3._o if_o the_o tithe_n and_o temple_n be_v give_v for_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o magistrate_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v they_o to_o such_o as_o be_v lawful_o call_v to_o be_v such_o pastor_n and_o not_o by_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o trust_n overthrow_v the_o way_n of_o entrance_n institute_v by_o christ_n 4._o however_o if_o they_o be_v devote_v to_o god_n it_o be_v god_n who_o be_v the_o proprietor_n and_o its_o sacrilege_n to_o alienate_v they_o and_o a_o intolerable_a ill_a disposal_n be_v alienation_n §_o 5._o iv._o i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o their_o ancestor_n gift_n of_o tithe_n or_o glebe_n and_o temple_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o common_a patronage_n and_o present_v power_n the_o will_n of_o the_o dead_a donor_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o their_o gift_n give_v to_o none_o but_o on_o the_o term_n by_o they_o determine_v but_o their_o gift_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v for_o the_o church_n good_a and_o not_o against_o it_o nor_o have_v they_o any_o power_n on_o pretence_n of_o beneficence_n to_o destroy_v or_o to_o take_v away_o more_o than_o they_o give_v but_o the_o trust_v of_o our_o soul_n conduct_v
be_v a_o matter_n of_o more_o weight_n than_o tithe_n and_o temple_n if_o tithe_n be_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n all_o that_o can_v be_v expect_v be_v that_o if_o the_o flock_n can_v trust_v he_o who_o the_o patron_n choose_v they_o let_v he_o give_v his_o tithe_n and_o temple_n to_o who_o he_o please_v and_o they_o will_v trust_v their_o soul_n with_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v and_o safe_o may_v but_o if_o he_o will_v choose_v and_o offer_v they_o one_o who_o they_o can_v safe_o and_o comfortable_o accept_v so_o as_o tithe_n and_o temple_n shall_v preponderate_v in_o case_n of_o small_a difference_n in_o the_o man_n prudence_n oblige_v they_o to_o accept_v of_o the_o advantage_n the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o the_o magistrate_n countenance_n and_o approbation_n but_o if_o the_o difference_n be_v very_o great_a it_o be_v better_a stretch_v our_o purse_n to_o build_v new_a temple_n and_o pay_v our_o pastor_n than_o trust_v our_o soul_n on_o the_o pastoral_n conduct_v of_o ignorant_a malignant_a unfaithful_a or_o heretical_a man_n §_o 6._o v._o i_o have_v oft_o say_v that_o mutual_a consent_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o relation_n of_o pastor_n and_o flock_n and_o though_o sometime_o the_o ruler_n imposition_n and_o the_o patron_n choice_n may_v make_v it_o the_o people_n duty_n in_o prudence_n to_o consent_v when_o the_o good_a preponderates_n the_o hurt_n not_o else_o yet_o till_o they_o consent_v the_o relation_n be_v not_o existent_a as_o if_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v wife_n and_o husband_n by_o the_o command_n and_o before_o choice_n of_o parent_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o marriage_n till_o they_o consent_v §_o 7._o the_o common_a objection_n be_v from_o the_o inconvenience_n if_o the_o several_a party_n agree_v not_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o the_o mischief_n of_o the_o contrary_a way_n be_v worse_a than_o that_o inconvenience_n 2._o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o world_n without_o inconvenience_n where_o all_o thing_n and_o person_n and_o action_n be_v imperfect_a 3._o if_o parent_n and_o child_n agree_v not_o about_o their_o marriage_n it_o have_v great_a inconvenience_n and_o yet_o neither_o parent_n government_n nor_o child_n consent_a liberty_n must_v be_v deny_v 4._o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o case_n divers_a lock_n and_o key_n keep_v the_o church_n treasure_n safe_a prince_n patron_n people_n and_o ordainer_n will_v not_o so_o often_o agree_v on_o a_o vile_a person_n as_o any_o one_o of_o they_o alone_o may_v do_v §_o 8._o and_o now_o judge_v how_o logical_o how_o honest_o the_o doctor_n have_v state_v the_o case_n and_o make_v i_o intolerable_o indiscreet_a and_o tragical_a against_o magistrate_n patron_n and_o law_n and_o try_v if_o you_o can_v understand_v what_o it_o be_v instead_o of_o this_o that_o he_o will_v have_v i_o tell_v he_o again_o that_o if_o he_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o flock_n consent_v to_o the_o mutual_a relation_n he_o notorious_o oppose_v the_o judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o prince_n patriarch_n prelate_n council_n and_o people_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o full_a stream_n of_o historical_a evidence_n for_o a_o new_a crooked_a way_n that_o will_v make_v as_o many_o mode_n of_o religion_n as_o there_o be_v different_a prince_n and_o here_o he_o wonder_n what_o he_o say_v that_o occasion_v such_o undecent_a passion_n it_o seem_v he_o feel_v some_o passion_n in_o read_v it_o and_o think_v he_o must_v have_v the_o like_a that_o write_v it_o and_o so_o let_v any_o man_n obtrude_v any_o pernicious_a thing_n on_o the_o church_n and_o he_o can_v easy_o prove_v the_o detector_n to_o have_v undecent_a passion_n for_o give_v a_o bad_a cause_n its_o proper_a name_n §_o 9_o but_o he_o can_v find_v out_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o inference_n that_o then_o prince_n may_v impose_v what_o religion_n they_o please_v answ_n not_o understanding_n with_o some_o man_n go_v for_o confute_v to_o put_v religion_n for_o the_o mode_n of_o religion_n be_v too_o little_a a_o slip_n of_o he_o to_o be_v insist_v on_o but_o be_v not_o my_o inference_n necessary_a i_o urge_v he_o to_o tell_v i_o in_o what_o country_n and_o under_o what_o sort_n of_o prince_n the_o rule_n hold_v that_o the_o people_n must_v not_o judge_v whether_o the_o offer_a pastor_n be_v heretic_n nor_o refuse_v they_o if_o prince_n and_o patron_n present_v they_o he_o will_v not_o be_v entreat_v to_o tell_v i_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o the_o rule_n be_v universal_a when_o a_o papist_n socinian_n anabaptist_n antiepiscopal_n etc._n etc._n prince_n and_o patron_n present_a man_n of_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o they_o be_v institute_v the_o people_n must_v take_v and_o trust_v they_o as_o their_o pastor_n and_o be_v not_o this_o to_o set_v up_o in_o all_o the_o church_n what_o modish_a religion_n prince_n and_o patron_n please_v be_v this_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v yet_o he_o call_v this_o rail_a on_o he_o for_o supposition_n of_o my_o own_o make_n and_o here_o he_o step_v over_o to_o another_o man_n §_o 10._o before_o i_o come_v to_o his_o undertake_n i_o will_v repeat_v another_o rail_n and_o undecent_a passion_n against_o his_o cause_n and_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v how_o well_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agree_v and_o to_o learn_v which_o of_o they_o it_o be_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v both_o as_o to_o history_n and_o right_n it_o be_v mr._n herbert_n thorndike_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o forbearance_n of_o penal_a it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o talk_v of_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n to_o regular_a government_n without_o restore_v the_o liberty_n of_o choose_v bishop_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o enjoy_v they_o to_o the_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n of_o each_o diocese_n so_o evident_a be_v the_o right_n of_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n in_o the_o make_n of_o those_o of_o who_o they_o consist_v and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v that_o i_o need_v make_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o the_o neglect_n of_o episcopacy_n than_o the_o neglect_n of_o it_o yet_o these_o two_o be_v doctor_n of_o one_o church_n but_o we_o be_v no_o member_n of_o it_o §_o 11._o i_o again_o say_v that_o either_o the_o reader_n have_v read_v the_o church_n history_n and_o canon_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v he_o tell_v who_o to_o believe_v that_o report_n they_o the_o doctor_n or_o i_o but_o if_o he_o have_v i_o will_v no_o more_o dispute_v this_o case_n with_o he_o than_o i_o will_v do_v whether_o english_a parliament_n use_v to_o make_v law_n he_o be_v pass_v my_o conviction_n if_o he_o be_v not_o convince_v §_o 12._o and_o i_o will_v again_o say_v that_o i_o will_v yet_o suppose_v the_o doctor_n so_o humble_a as_o to_o acknowledge_v himself_o much_o inferior_a to_o paulus_n sarpi_fw-la servita_fw-la venerunt_fw-la in_o point_n of_o church_n history_n at_o least_o i_o say_v to_o the_o reader_n peruse_v what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o this_o controversy_n and_o of_o the_o alteration_n of_o church_n government_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o his_o book_n of_o church_n benefice_n late_o translate_v by_o dr._n denton_n and_o doubt_v if_o you_o can_v §_o 13._o and_o in_o general_n i_o add_v i._o i_o suppose_v no_o man_n of_o such_o read_n make_v any_o doubt_n of_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n whether_o any_o bishop_n be_v make_v over_o any_o church_n without_o the_o free_a election_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o ordainer_n i_o will_v not_o for_o shame_n stay_v to_o prove_v this_o have_v say_v so_o much_o of_o it_o in_o my_o first_o plea_n for_o peace_n and_o episcopal_a church_n history_n which_o be_v unanswered_a ii_o and_o since_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n it_o be_v so_o notorious_a in_o history_n that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o need_v proof_n of_o it_o that_o the_o christian_a emperor_n confirm_v the_o church_n in_o this_o right_a and_o use_v and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o permit_v and_o order_v that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n clergy_n and_o synod_n and_o when_o the_o people_n election_n be_v infringe_v the_o necessity_n of_o their_o consent_n long_o continue_v and_o it_o be_v only_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o five_o patriarch_n that_o the_o emperor_n use_v to_o meddle_v and_o that_o not_o always_o nor_o at_o all_o choose_v they_o alone_o but_o commend_v some_o one_o to_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n to_o choose_v or_o confirm_v some_o one_o that_o they_o have_v nominate_v and_o this_o hold_v on_o till_o popery_n spring_v up_o iii_o and_o even_o then_o the_o pope_n long_o continue_v it_o but_o 1._o they_o strive_v special_o in_o hildebrand_n day_n and_o
which_o settle_v humane_a government_n and_o obedience_n choose_v the_o name_n of_o parent_n rather_o than_o prince_n because_o parent_n government_n be_v antecedent_n to_o prince_n and_o prince_n can_v take_v it_o from_o they_o nor_o disoblige_v their_o child_n but_o self-government_n be_v more_o natural_a than_o parent_n and_o parent_n and_o prince_n must_v help_v it_o but_o not_o destroy_v it_o 7._o when_o person_n want_v natural_a capacity_n for_o self-government_n as_o infant_n and_o idiot_n and_o madman_n they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o force_n as_o bruit_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o more_o 8._o family_n government_n be_v in_o order_n next_o to_o personal_a prince_n or_o bishop_n have_v no_o right_a to_o overthrow_v it_o at_o least_o except_o in_o part_n on_o slave_n of_o who_o life_n they_o have_v absolute_a power_n if_o the_o king_n impose_v wife_n servants_z and_o diet_n on_o all_o his_o subject_n they_o may_v lawful_o choose_v fit_a for_o themselves_o if_o they_o can_v and_o at_o least_o may_v refuse_v unmeet_a wife_n and_o servant_n and_o mortal_a or_o hurtful_a meat_n and_o drink_n 9_o much_o more_o if_o prince_n and_o patron_n will_v impose_v on_o all_o man_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n to_o who_o charge_n care_n and_o pastoral_n conduct_v they_o must_v commit_v their_o soul_n the_o people_n have_v the_o near_a right_n of_o choice_n and_o strong_a obligation_n must_v refuse_v as_o discern_v self-governing_a judge_n such_o who_o heresy_n negligence_n ignorance_n malignity_n or_o treachery_n be_v like_o either_o apparent_o to_o hazard_v they_o or_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o that_o pastoral_n help_v which_o they_o find_v needful_a for_o they_o and_o they_o have_v right_a to_o as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n 10._o the_o gain_n or_o loss_n be_v more_o the_o patient_n than_o the_o imposer_n it_o be_v their_o own_o soul_n that_o be_v like_a to_o be_v profit_v and_o save_v by_o needful_a help_n or_o lose_v for_o want_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o most_o concern_v themselves_o to_o know_v what_o help_v they_o choose_v 11._o if_o all_o the_o king_n on_o earth_n command_v man_n to_o trust_v their_o life_n to_o a_o physician_n who_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o believe_v be_v like_a to_o kill_v they_o by_o ignorance_n error_n or_o treachery_n or_o to_o a_o pilot_n or_o boat-man_n that_o be_v like_a to_o drown_v they_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v such_o mandate_n yea_o if_o they_o know_v a_o able_a faithful_a physician_n that_o be_v most_o like_a to_o cure_v they_o they_o may_v choose_v he_o before_o a_o unknown_a man_n though_o the_o king_n be_v against_o their_o choice_n 12._o scripture_n and_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n work_v usual_o according_a to_o the_o aptitude_n of_o mean_n and_o instrument_n and_o learned_a experience_a physician_n cure_v more_o than_o the_o ignorant_a rash_a and_o slothful_a and_o good_a scholar_n make_v their_o pupil_n more_o learned_a than_o the_o ignorant_a do_v and_o skilful_a able_a experience_a holy_a pastor_n convert_v and_o edify_v much_o more_o than_o ignorant_a and_o vicious_a man_n and_o mean_n must_v according_o be_v choose_v 13._o if_o the_o pastoral_n work_v skilful_o and_o faithful_o do_v be_v needful_a it_o must_v not_o be_v neglect_v whoever_o forbid_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a what_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n good_a for_o more_o than_o infidel_n or_o at_o least_o than_o moscovite_n and_o for_o what_o be_v they_o maintain_v by_o tithe_n glebe_n and_o all_o the_o dignity_n honour_n and_o wealth_n they_o have_v and_o for_o what_o do_v man_n so_o much_o contend_v for_o they_o 14._o it_o be_v natural_a to_o generate_v the_o like_a and_o for_o man_n to_o do_v and_o choose_v as_o they_o be_v and_o as_o their_o interest_n lead_v they_o christ_n tell_v we_o how_o hard_o it_o be_v for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o how_o few_o such_o prove_v good_a and_o the_o clergy_n themselves_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o the_o patron_n in_o england_n be_v wise_a and_o pious_a many_o parliament_n have_v by_o our_o churchman_n be_v deep_o accuse_v and_o most_o parliament_n man_n i_o think_v be_v patron_n other_o say_v that_o most_o patron_n not_o choose_v to_o parliament_n be_v worse_o some_o preacher_n complain_v of_o great_a man_n for_o fornication_n drunkenness_n excess_n idleness_n yea_o atheism_n or_o infidelity_n if_o many_o or_o any_o be_v such_o be_v they_o like_v to_o choose_v such_o pastor_n as_o all_o godly_a man_n may_v trust_v in_o so_o great_a a_o case_n or_o will_v not_o such_o prince_n choose_v such_o bishop_n 15._o man_n be_v as_o able_a and_o as_o much_o oblige_v now_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o who_o conduct_n they_o trust_v their_o soul_n as_o they_o be_v in_o all_o former_a age_n of_o the_o church_n forecited_a 16._o the_o law_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n allow_v all_o man_n liberty_n to_o choose_v what_o church_n and_o pastor_n that_o conform_v they_o please_v so_o they_o will_v but_o remove_v their_o dwelling_n into_o the_o parish_n which_o they_o affect_v and_o in_o london_n thousand_o live_v as_o lodger_n and_o may_v easy_o go_v under_o who_o they_o will_v choose_v and_o if_o they_o like_v he_o not_o may_v shift_v as_o oft_o as_o they_o please_v 17._o parish_n bound_n be_v of_o much_o use_n for_o order_n but_o order_n be_v for_o the_o thing_n order_v and_o not_o against_o it_o and_o parish_n bound_v be_v of_o humane_a make_v can_v just_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o needful_a edification_n and_o safety_n of_o man_n soul_n though_o such_o humane_a law_n bind_v where_o there_o be_v no_o great_a obligation_n against_o they_o 18._o the_o law_n of_o keep_v to_o parish-church_n where_o we_o dwell_v and_o the_o law_n that_o give_v patron_n the_o choice_n of_o all_o the_o pastor_n and_o prince_n of_o bishop_n be_v of_o the_o same_o efficient_a power_n and_o strength_n 19_o casuist_n usual_o say_v even_a papist_n that_o be_v too_o much_o for_o papal_a power_n that_o humane_a law_n bind_v not_o when_o they_o be_v against_o the_o end_n the_o common_a good_a especial_o against_o man_n salvation_n and_o a_o toledan_a council_n decree_v that_o none_o of_o their_o canon_n shall_v be_v interpret_v to_o bind_v ad_fw-la culpam_fw-la but_o ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la lest_o they_o cause_n man_n damnation_n and_o many_o casuist_n say_v that_o penal_a law_n bind_v only_o to_o do_v or_o suffer_v and_o bear_v the_o penalty_n satisfy_v they_o save_v as_o to_o scandal_n 20._o yet_o we_o still_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o right_a in_o prince_n and_o patron_n beforementioned_a and_o that_o prince_n be_v bind_v to_o promote_v learning_n and_o piety_n and_o so_o to_o see_v that_o due_a place_n countenance_n and_o maintenance_n encourage_v faithful_a minister_n and_o that_o all_o the_o subject_n have_v meet_a teacher_n and_o submit_v to_o hear_v and_o learn_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v restrain_v heretic_n and_o soul-betrayer_n from_o the_o sacred_a office-work_n and_o judge_v who_o be_v to_o be_v maintain_v and_o who_o to_o be_v tolerate_v 21._o but_o this_o power_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o bound_v and_o if_o on_o the_o pretence_n of_o it_o they_o will_v betray_v the_o church_n and_o starve_v soul_n like_o the_o english_a canon_n that_o bind_v all_o from_o go_v to_o a_o able_a pastor_n at_o the_o next_o parish_n from_o a_o ignorant_a unpreach_v vicious_a reader_n man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v it_o but_o to_o provide_v better_o for_o themselves_o unless_o material_o not_o formal_o for_o some_o time_n when_o not_o obey_v will_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a or_o as_o a_o man_n must_v forbear_v public_a assembly_n in_o a_o common_a plague-time_n and_o so_o much_o to_o open_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n and_o paul_n word_n to_o timothy_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 16._o tell_v i_o this_o care_n be_v not_o unnecessary_a take_v heed_n to_o thyself_o and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o continue_v in_o they_o for_o in_o do_v this_o thou_o shall_v both_o save_v thyself_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v thou_o §_o 17._o come_v now_o to_o the_o doctor_n be_v word_n who_o p._n 312._o undertake_v to_o prove_v 1._o that_o the_o main_a ground_n of_o the_o people_n interest_n be_v found_v on_o the_o apostle_n canon_n a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a ans_fw-fr the_o word_n main_a may_v do_v he_o service_n but_o no_o hurt_n to_o my_o cause_n main_n signify_v not_o only_o who_o doubt_n but_o the_o people_n be_v to_o discern_v the_o life_n of_o choose_a person_n but_o without_o come_v to_o the_o balance_n among_o many_o cause_n which_o be_v the_o main_a i_o have_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v more_o and_o among_o other_o that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n bid_v they_o take_v heed_n how_o they_o hear_v beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o their_o leaven_n beware_v of_o the_o concision_n a_o man_n
magistrate_n may_v restrain_v he_o and_o refuse_v to_o tolerate_v a_o intolerable_a man_n and_o yet_o the_o people_n ought_v not_o to_o accept_v a_o uncapable_a man_n offer_v by_o bishop_n or_o patron_n no_o nor_o a_o man_n next_o to_o uncapable_a when_o they_o need_v and_o may_v have_v much_o better_a many_o negative_n be_v safe_a §_o 53._o he_o say_v the_o profane_a have_v right_a to_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o to_o the_o care_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o be_v equal_o concern_v with_o other_o to_o choose_v answ_n it_o be_v sad_a with_o the_o church_n when_o they_o need_v to_o be_v save_v from_o such_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a teacher_n 1._o a_o right_a to_o care_v for_o their_o soul_n give_v no_o man_n right_a to_o choose_v man_n for_o other_o soul_n to_o do_v that_o which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v for_o their_o own_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o that_o man_n will_v communicate_v with_o the_o church_n on_o christ_n term_n he_o refuse_v and_o will_v not_o else_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v refuse_v and_o shall_v he_o that_o refuse_v communion_n choose_v one_o to_o give_v it_o other_o because_o he_o have_v a_o soul_n himself_o have_v the_o neighbour_n heathen_n and_o heretic_n of_o old_a power_n to_o choose_v bishop_n for_o the_o church_n while_o they_o refuse_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n themselves_o shall_v he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v of_o the_o society_n choose_v for_o the_o society_n 2._o we_o distinguish_v between_o what_o a_o man_n may_v be_v force_v to_o and_o what_o not_o he_o may_v not_o be_v force_v to_o the_o great_a gift_n of_o sacramental_a remission_n and_o communion_n because_o no_o unwilling_a person_n have_v right_a to_o it_o but_o a_o ignorant_a person_n may_v be_v force_v as_o a_o catechumen_n or_o hearer_n to_o hear_v what_o can_v be_v say_v for_o his_o conviction_n for_o truth_n may_v conquer_v the_o unwilling_a but_o none_o on_o this_o pretence_n can_v hinder_v the_o church_n from_o hear_v its_o own_o pastor_n nor_o force_v man_n to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a auditor_n of_o mahometan_n heretic_n or_o heathen_n §_o 54._o p._n 331._o he_o again_o tragical_o exclaim_v of_o i_o on_o the_o old_a false_a supposition_n that_o i_o make_v the_o people_n the_o sole_a chooser_n and_o not_o only_o plead_v for_o their_o free_a negative_a vote_n though_o choose_v also_o but_o not_o alone_o be_v the_o old_a way_n and_o here_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o tumult_n that_o will_v follow_v answ_n 1._o so_o they_o will_v if_o the_o people_n choose_v in_o france_n spain_n italy_n and_o yet_o i_o will_v they_o do_v no_o humane_a action_n be_v free_a from_o inconvenience_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v cure_v with_o a_o mischief_n 2._o let_v he_o name_v i_o ten_o place_n that_o have_v suffer_v so_o deep_o by_o the_o people_n choice_n as_o i_o can_v tell_v he_o of_o ten_o thousand_o that_o have_v do_v by_o the_o choice_n of_o prelate_n patron_n and_o prince_n and_o i_o will_v confess_v my_o error_n it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o people_n choice_n that_o all_o preach_v be_v put_v down_o in_o moscovy_n it_o be_v not_o the_o people_n that_o have_v this_o many_o hundred_o year_n choose_v all_o the_o popish_a bishop_n mass-priest_n etc._n etc._n in_o italy_n and_o most_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o in_o spain_n france_n bavaria_n etc._n etc._n 3._o i_o tell_v he_o but_o have_v no_o answer_n that_o not_o only_o the_o inn_n of_o court_n but_o also_o black_a friar_n aldermanburic_n and_o such_o other_o place_n as_o have_v choose_v their_o own_o teacher_n have_v peaceable_o have_v as_o happy_a a_o succession_n of_o learned_a godly_a able_a pastor_n as_o any_o place_n in_o london_n or_o in_o england_n 4._o it_o be_v know_v by_o experience_n that_o learning_n and_o great_a worth_n do_v as_o light_v so_o reveal_v itself_o to_o humane_a nature_n that_o usual_o most_o of_o those_o that_o be_v loath_a to_o be_v holy_a themselves_o will_v have_v a_o saint_n and_o a_o able_a man_n 5._o do_v he_o think_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o all_o the_o patron_n in_o england_n be_v like_a to_o be_v judicious_a and_o free_a from_o solicitation_n favour_n and_o respect_n of_o person_n than_o the_o majority_n of_o the_o communicant_n of_o such_o church_n 6._o if_o the_o parson_n first_o admit_v great_a number_n of_o profane_a and_o wicked_a man_n to_o be_v communicant_n and_o then_o tell_v we_o how_o unfit_a these_o man_n be_v to_o choose_v they_o do_v but_o condemn_v themselves_o §_o 55._o p._n 333._o he_o tell_v we_o we_o do_v but_o say_v we_o judge_v we_o think_v etc._n etc._n the_o thing_n unlawful_a but_o for_o particular_a argument_n to_o prove_v they_o unlawful_a he_o find_v none_o answ_n if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o they_o that_o never_o find_v our_o argument_n never_o answer_v they_o if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a it_o be_v not_o well_o then_o you_o here_o and_o mr._n falkener_n fulwood_n durel_n etc._n etc._n have_v not_o yet_o answer_v any_o of_o our_o argument_n remember_v this_o 2._o though_o i_o do_v not_o argue_v but_o name_v the_o thing_n in_o my_o first_o plea_n you_o and_o other_o take_v it_o for_o argue_v and_o we_o ever_o crave_v leave_v to_o do_v it_o 3._o be_v it_o true_a indeed_o that_o there_o be_v no_o argument_n in_o our_o write_n 1660._o and_o 1661._o with_o the_o bishop_n nor_o any_o in_o my_o book_n of_o concord_n or_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n nor_o in_o my_o old_a disputation_n of_o church-government_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o man_n book_n these_o eighteen_o year_n i_o doubt_v the_o angry_a bishop_n will_v think_v that_o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o episcopacy_n there_o be_v some_o sort_n of_o argument_n and_o that_o my_o book_n against_o sacril_n desertion_n of_o the_o ministry_n have_v some_o and_o that_o a_o apology_n for_o our_o preach_n now_o in_o the_o press_n have_v some_o but_o if_o there_o be_v none_o accuse_v we_o of_o none_o chap._n x._o of_o the_o impose_v use_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n and_o deny_v baptism_n to_o the_o refuser_n §_o 1._o page_n 343._o he_o come_v to_o our_o charge_n against_o the_o church_n though_o he_o never_o find_v any_o argument_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o i._n why_o do_v he_o silent_o balk_v the_o chief_a thing_n which_o i_o have_v name_v will_v this_o satisfy_v conscience_n will_v excuse_v some_o thing_n make_v other_o lawful_a ii_o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v for_o the_o cross_n i_o have_v so_o full_o answer_v it_o twice_o to_o mr._n cheney_n and_o once_o to_o the_o impleader_n that_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o repeat_v all_o again_o in_o short_a 1._o he_o say_v the_o church_n intend_v it_o not_o for_o a_o sign_n of_o immediate_a dedication_n answ_n 1._o what_o be_v the_o medium_fw-la 2._o what_o if_o it_o be_v not_o immediate_a 3._o can_v it_o be_v more_o immediate_a than_o in_o the_o very_a present_a dedicate_a act_n to_o use_v the_o sign_n and_o express_v the_o dedicate_a signification_n 4._o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v to_o dedicate_v they_o by_o that_o badge_n to_o his_o service_n who_o benefit_n bestow_v on_o they_o in_o baptism_n the_o name_n of_o the_o cross_n do_v represent_v and_o after_o the_o church_n of_o england_n account_v it_o a_o honourable_a badge_n whereby_o the_o infant_n be_v dedicate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o he_o that_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o service_n be_v name_v christianity_n in_o practice_n to_o fight_n under_o his_o banner_n etc._n etc._n 2._o he_o say_v in_o baptise_v the_o minister_n act_n by_o authority_n derive_v from_o christ_n but_o at_o cross_v he_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n we_o receive_v this_o child_n etc._n etc._n answ_n 1._o it_o be_v meet_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o that_o christ_n sacrament_n be_v use_v by_o christ_n authority_n and_o man_n by_o man_n 2._o but_o i_o hope_v this_o be_v but_o a_o quibble_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o word_n we_o the_o minister_n as_o christ_n minister_n and_o in_o his_o name_n say_v we_o receive_v this_o child_n when_o even_o the_o absolve_v be_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o christ_n first_o and_o then_o by_o the_o church_n i_o will_v not_o else_o aggravate_v the_o ill_a consequence_n §_o 2._o he_o before_o say_v be_v the_o cross_a a_o dedicate_a sign_n to_o god_n or_o a_o declarative_a sign_n to_o man_n answ_n the_o canon_n say_v express_o twice_o to_o dedicate_v they_o by_o this_o badge_n to_o his_o service_n and_o a_o honourable_a badge_n whereby_o the_o infant_n be_v dedicate_v to_o his_o service_n and_o the_o rubric_n which_o we_o must_v subscribe_v refer_v we_o to_o the_o canon_n for_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o cross_v 2._o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n a_o sign_n to_o god_n or_o to_o man_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n to_o man_n for_o god_n god_n know_v
superstition_n etc._n etc._n i_o name_v many_o case_n in_o which_o a_o image_n may_v be_v use_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o pray_v before_o or_o towards_o a_o image_n in_o a_o room_n where_o they_o be_v place_v only_o for_o ornament_n etc._n etc._n be_v this_o to_o say_v worship_n may_v be_v direct_v to_o it_o or_o that_o we_o may_v kneel_v before_o a_o crucifix_n when_o i_o have_v before_o except_v the_o image_n of_o god_n christ_n etc._n etc._n in_o worship_n on_o several_a reason_n do_v any_o protestant_a doubt_n of_o what_o i_o assert_v my_o parlour_n have_v on_o all_o four_o side_n the_o picture_n of_o our_o live_a friend_n must_v i_o not_o pray_v in_o that_o room_n because_o my_o face_n will_v be_v still_o towards_o some_o of_o they_o do_v he_o doubt_v of_o this_o or_o be_v not_o his_o cite_n one_o half_a of_o the_o word_n as_o he_o do_v to_o deceive_v his_o credulous_a reader_n if_o not_o worse_o §_o 10._o he_o say_v kneel_v before_o a_o crucifix_n be_v lawful_a to_o he_o suppose_v the_o mind_n be_v only_o excite_v by_o it_o answ_n a_o calumny_n make_v up_o by_o set_v together_o two_o scrap_n of_o remote_a sentence_n 1._o because_o i_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o room_n where_o picture_n not_o any_o be_v before_o i_o for_o meet_v ornament_n therefore_o he_o feign_v i_o to_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kneel_v before_o a_o crucifix_n 2._o and_o elsewhere_o i_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v excite_v to_o a_o good_a thought_n by_o see_v a_o deaths-head_n or_o any_o of_o god_n work_n and_o so_o it_o be_v by_o see_v a_o crucifix_n which_o no_o sober_a christian_a doubt_n of_o he_o feign_v i_o to_o make_v it_o a_o exciting_a sign_n to_o he_o that_o kneel_v before_o it_o §_o 11._o yea_o he_o make_v so_o much_o use_v of_o his_o own_o calumny_n as_o p._n 354._o to_o prove_v i_o strange_o partial_a allow_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v before_o a_o crucifix_n as_o a_o medium_n excitans_fw-la as_o a_o object_n that_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o worship_v affection_n and_o so_o excuse_v all_o papist_n from_o idolatry_n that_o profess_v they_o use_v a_o crucifix_n for_o no_o other_o end_n answ_n mere_a repeat_v forgery_n not_o become_v his_o profession_n i_o never_o speak_v for_o pray_v before_o it_o much_o less_o as_o a_o object_n to_o stir_v up_o worship_v affection_n but_o only_o that_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o fly_v at_o prayer_n from_o a_o room_n that_o have_v only_o ornamental_a picture_n and_o that_o as_o in_o the_o geneva_n bible_n there_o be_v historical_a picture_n and_o few_o but_o turk_n be_v against_o they_o it_o be_v lawful_a i_o say_v not_o kneel_v before_o they_o at_o prayer_n but_o out_o of_o case_n of_o scandal_n and_o danger_n to_o be_v excite_v by_o they_o to_o good_a affection_n and_o indeed_o good_a affection_n be_v worship_v affection_n dare_v any_o christian_a say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o think_v reverent_o of_o god_n when_o we_o see_v his_o work_n or_o see_v but_o a_o picture_n of_o scripture_n history_n as_o abraham_n offer_v isaac_n christ_n die_v and_o rise_v etc._n etc._n nonconformist_n have_v still_o take_v they_o for_o liar_n that_o say_v they_o be_v against_o historical_a picture_n and_o show_v it_o in_o the_o geneva_n bible_n i_o have_v see_v in_o many_o pious_a country_n house_n all_o the_o story_n of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n paint_v over_o their_o table_n and_o never_o hear_v the_o good_a use_n of_o it_o accuse_v but_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v my_o word_n which_o he_o cit_v quest_n 113._o and_o judge_v with_o what_o honesty_n we_o be_v accuse_v i_o there_o say_v 1._o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o make_v any_o image_n of_o god_n 4._o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o make_v place_n or_o use_v a_o image_n as_o be_v like_a to_o do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a or_o to_o tempt_v to_o sin_n and_o all_o such_o image_n of_o creature_n as_o other_o use_v to_o give_v unlawful_a worship_n or_o honour_n to_o when_o like_a to_o tempt_v other_o to_o the_o like_a as_o among_o the_o papist_n the_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o angel_n may_v not_o be_v make_v place_v or_o use_v so_o as_o may_v tempt_v any_o to_o worship_v they_o sinful_o as_o they_o do_v 11._o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o place_v image_n in_o church_n or_o in_o secret_a before_o our_o eye_n when_o we_o be_v worship_v god_n when_o it_o tend_v to_o corrupt_v the_o mind_n which_o be_v the_o ordinary_a effect_n of_o image_n 12._o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o use_v image_n scandalous_o as_o any_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a sinner_n use_v they_o though_o we_o do_v it_o not_o with_o the_o same_o intent_n that_o be_v so_o as_o in_o outward_a appearance_n be_v the_o same_o with_o their_o use_n because_o so_o we_o shall_v dishonour_v god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o harden_v they_o in_o sin_n therefore_o image_n in_o church_n or_o in_o oratory_n in_o those_o country_n where_o other_o use_v they_o sinful_o or_o near_o such_o country_n where_o the_o same_o may_v harden_v man_n in_o their_o sin_n be_v evil_a 21._o i_o think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o make_v a_o image_n or_o any_o equal_a institute_v sign_n to_o be_v the_o public_a common_a symbol_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n though_o but_o a_o profess_v sign_n as_o they_o make_v the_o cross_n do_v this_o doctrine_n justify_v the_o papist_n and_o p._n 876._o §_o 14._o i_o large_o prove_v the_o use_n of_o a_o crucifix_n as_o they_o do_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n to_o be_v unlawful_a which_o he_o answer_v not_o be_v it_o not_o consistent_a with_o all_o this_o that_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o pray_v before_o or_o towards_o a_o image_n in_o a_o room_n where_o image_n be_v place_v only_o for_o ornament_n and_o we_o have_v no_o respect_n to_o they_o as_o a_o medium_n or_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n except_o as_o by_o accident_n it_o be_v make_v unlawful_a and_o that_o not_o kneel_v to_o they_o nor_o in_o prayer_n but_z in_o transient_a meditation_n it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o use_v they_o historical_o as_o to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o a_o worship_a affection_n if_o the_o papist_n do_v no_o more_o no_o protestant_n will_v call_v they_o idolater_n for_o it_o but_o if_o they_o use_v they_o idolatrous_o it_o make_v our_o use_n of_o they_o unlawful_a when_o even_o but_o outward_o it_o be_v like_o they_o and_o so_o i_o say_v of_o the_o cross_n this_o be_v the_o doctor_n zeal_n against_o idolatry_n that_o it_o seem_v will_v have_v we_o all_o use_v as_o his_o book_n intimate_v till_o we_o dare_v use_v the_o transient_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n much_o worse_a than_o he_o make_v the_o papist_n to_o use_v image_n and_o crucifix_n in_o particular_a for_o to_o use_v they_o as_o a_o dedicate_a common_a badge_n of_o christianity_n in_o our_o great_a covenant_n with_o christ_n be_v more_o than_o to_o use_v they_o historical_o and_o in_o meditation_n or_o more_o than_o to_o pray_v in_o room_n adorn_v with_o common_a picture_n but_o he_o know_v that_o the_o papist_n give_v more_o to_o image_n §_o 12._o obj._n but_o what_o need_n have_v you_o to_o say_v all_o this_o of_o image_n answ_n that_o man_n may_v understand_v it_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o candour_n of_o our_o accuser_n dr._n r._n cox_n bishop_n of_o ely_n consult_v with_o cassander_n to_o have_v have_v image_n in_o our_o church_n the_o lutheran_n so_o use_v they_o our_o new_a church_n of_o england_n begin_v to_o set_v up_o crucifix_n over_o altar_n and_o to_o plead_v more_o for_o church-picture_n than_o heretofore_o in_o 1642._o the_o parliament_n order_v the_o deface_v all_o image_n of_o any_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o church_n or_o churchyard_n before_o the_o king_n go_v from_o they_o because_o i_o read_v this_o order_n and_o the_o churchwarden_n attempt_v to_o obey_v it_o the_o rabble_n of_o drunken_a swear_a journeyman_n who_o be_v all_o for_o conformity_n rise_v in_o a_o tumult_n with_o club_n seek_v to_o kill_v i_o and_o the_o churchwarden_n and_o knock_v down_o two_o countryman_n because_o they_o be_v our_o friend_n who_o carry_v the_o hurt_n to_o their_o death_n and_o the_o conform_v clergy_n be_v so_o much_o for_o they_o that_o one_o of_o they_o indict_v i_o at_o the_o assize_n and_o i_o be_v force_v to_o leave_v the_o country_n such_o rage_n for_o image_n tempt_v some_o religious_a man_n that_o be_v against_o they_o to_o be_v more_o censorious_a against_o the_o conformist_n than_o i_o will_v have_v they_o and_o to_o run_v too_o near_o the_o other_o extreme_a and_o after_o it_o grow_v a_o dispute_n whether_o the_o lutheran_n be_v not_o heretic_n of_o which_o see_v caspar_n streso_fw-la
etc._n 3._o that_o many_o of_o they_o deny_v all_o proper_a sacramental_a causality_n of_o grace_n 4._o special_o physical_a and_o protestant_n make_v they_o not_o mere_a sign_n but_o invest_v sign_n 5._o and_o ponere_fw-la obicem_fw-la be_v to_o want_n necessary_a moral_a qualification_n and_o action_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o now_o the_o dr._n have_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v i_o wherein_o i_o be_v very_o much_o mistake_v §_o 15._o he_o next_o say_v the_o cross_n be_v in_o no_o sense_n hold_v to_o be_v a_o instrument_n appoint_v for_o convey_v grace_n answ_n 1._o not_o by_o god_n for_o it_o be_v none_o of_o god_n ordinance_n 2._o but_o that_o by_o man_n it_o be_v i_o have_v manifest_v if_o a_o moral_a objective_n move_v and_o teach_v mean_n may_v be_v call_v a_o instrument_n if_o not_o the_o word_n instrument_n be_v nothing_o to_o our_o case_n 1._o to_o work_v on_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o adult_n by_o representation_n signification_n excitation_n as_o the_o word_n do_v be_v to_o be_v a_o operative_a moral_a cause_n or_o mean_n and_o this_o the_o church_n ascribe_v to_o it_o pref._n to_o liturg._n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o and_o reception_n into_o the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o engagement_n to_o fight_v under_o christ_n banner_n etc._n etc._n be_v grace_n some_o of_o which_o be_v give_v by_o excitation_n and_o some_o the_o relation_n by_o investiture_n §_o 16._o and_o now_o whether_o i_o have_v only_o invent_v these_o objection_n to_o amuse_v and_o perplex_v man_n conscience_n and_o this_o dr._n have_v make_v all_o so_o plain_a that_o all_o may_v venture_v on_o it_o and_o he_o and_o all_o minister_n may_v deny_v they_o christendom_n that_o dare_v not_o venture_v and_o cast_v out_o all_o from_o the_o ministry_n that_o be_v not_o as_o bold_a as_o he_o i_o leave_v to_o consideration_n he_o next_o turn_v to_o mr._n a._n about_o bow_v and_o so_o go_v to_o their_o excommunication_n chap._n xi_o whether_o the_o excommunicate_a church_n or_o the_o excommunicate_v for_o not_o communicate_v when_o excommunicate_v be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 1._o their_o canon_n excommunicate_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la all_o that_o say_v conformity_n be_v unlawful_a and_o many_o such_o like_a 1._o he_o say_v the_o excommunication_n be_v not_o against_o such_o as_o modest_o scruple_n the_o lawfulness_n of_o thing_n impose_v but_o those_o who_o obstinate_o affirm_v it_o answ_n reader_n trust_v neither_o he_o nor_o i_o but_o read_v the_o word_n can._n 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v under_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o a_o true_a and_o a_o apostolical_a church_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o form_n of_o god_n worship_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o the_o law_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n be_v a_o corrupt_a superstitious_a or_o unlawful_a worship_n of_o god_n or_o contain_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o not_o restore_v till_o etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o any_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v in_o any_o part_n superstitious_a or_o erroneous_a or_o such_o as_o he_o may_v not_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n subscribe_v unto_o let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o not_o restore_v till_o etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v be_v wicked_a antichristian_a or_o superstitious_a or_o such_o as_o be_v command_v by_o lawful_a authority_n man_n who_o be_v zealous_o and_o godly_a affect_a may_v not_o with_o any_o good_a conscience_n approve_v they_o use_v they_o or_o as_o occasion_n require_v subscribe_v to_o they_o let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o not_o restore_v till_o he_o repent_v and_o public_o revoke_v such_o his_o wicked_a error_n can._n 7._o whosoever_o shall_v hereafter_o affirm_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n under_o his_o majesty_n by_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n dean_n arch-deacon_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o bear_v office_n in_o the_o same_o be_v antichristian_a or_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la etc._n etc._n can._n 8._o whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n contain_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la etc._n etc._n can._n 11._o whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o there_o be_v within_o this_o realm_n other_o meeting_n assembly_n or_o congregation_n of_o the_o king_n bear_v subject_n than_o such_o as_o by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n be_v hold_v and_o allow_v which_o may_v right_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o true_a and_o lawful_a church_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o now_o if_o the_o reader_n will_v no_o more_o believe_v the_o doctor_n it_o be_v not_o long_o of_o i_o if_o all_o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o that_o obstinate_o affirm_v the_o ceremony_n antichristian_a impious_a or_o superstitious_a understand_a they_o be_v not_o possible_a §_o 2._o but_o i_o confess_v they_o excommunicate_v not_o man_n for_o secret_a thought_n we_o thank_v they_o for_o nothing_o it_o be_v but_o for_o tell_v their_o judgement_n and_o dissenter_n may_v have_v many_o occasion_n to_o tell_v it_o the_o king_n commission_n once_o allow_v some_o of_o we_o to_o tell_v it_o the_o demand_n accusation_n calumniate_a book_n and_o sermon_n etc._n etc._n may_v call_v many_o to_o it_o §_o 3._o he_o say_v all_o excommunication_n suppose_v precedent_a admonition_n answ_n 1._o they_o shall_v do_v so_o the_o worse_a be_v you_o because_o it_o do_v not_o so_o it_o only_o allow_v admonition_n to_o repent_v for_o his_o restoration_n which_o make_v m._n anton._n spalatensis_n say_v so_o much_o against_o it_o 2._o if_o it_o do_v oblige_v you_o to_o admonish_v we_o as_o you_o have_v do_v by_o your_o book_n you_o know_v that_o this_o change_v not_o our_o judgement_n so_o that_o to_o be_v excommunicate_a before_o the_o admonition_n and_o after_o come_v all_o to_o one_o but_o indeed_o when_o the_o law_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunicate_v the_o law_n itself_o be_v the_o admonition_n §_o 4._o he_o add_v general_a excommunication_n though_o they_o be_v latae_fw-la sententiae_fw-la do_v not_o affect_v the_o particular_a person_n till_o the_o evidence_n be_v notorious_a not_o only_o of_o the_o bare_a fact_n but_o the_o contumacy_n answ_n affect_v be_v a_o word_n that_o signify_v what_o you_o please_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v for_o and_o upon_o the_o fact_n prove_v without_o any_o sentence_n of_o a_o judge_n while_o the_o fact_n only_o be_v thus_o make_v the_o full_a cause_n the_o contumacy_n need_v not_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v true_a 1._o that_o the_o fact_n must_v be_v prove_v 2._o and_o then_o the_o law_n be_v a_o sentence_n and_o relative_o affect_v the_o person_n as_o sentence_v 3._o but_o no_o person_n else_o be_v oblige_v to_o avoid_v he_o till_o the_o fact_n be_v lawful_o publish_v but_o the_o man_n be_v excommunicate_a and_o 4._o whether_o the_o man_n that_o know_v the_o law_n and_o his_o own_o fact_n be_v not_o bind_v himself_o to_o avoid_v the_o church_n communion_n be_v a_o great_a controversy_n and_o the_o plain_a truth_n be_v if_o it_o be_v a_o just_a excommunication_n he_o be_v bind_v to_o forbear_v communion_n in_o obedience_n to_o it_o as_o much_o as_o a_o silence_a minister_n be_v to_o forbear_v preach_v but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sentence_n unjust_a and_o injustice_n be_v not_o so_o gross_a as_o to_o nullify_v it_o still_o he_o must_v forbear_v but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o unjust_a as_o to_o be_v invalid_a he_o may_v communicate_v till_o he_o be_v executive_o reject_v as_o one_o so_o unjust_o silence_v may_v preach_v if_o he_o can_v for_o the_o case_n be_v much_o like_a the_o reader_n will_v be_v displease_v if_o i_o shall_v cite_v he_o many_o casuist_n in_o so_o plain_a a_o case_n 2._o but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o the_o general_n sentence_n of_o the_o canon_n speak_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v all_o that_o lawmaker_n can_v do_v before_o judgement_n and_o the_o law_n be_v norma_fw-la officii_fw-la &_o judicii_fw-la oblige_v subject_a and_o judge_n §_o 5._o it_o be_v true_a that_o linwood_n say_v that_o a_o declaratory_a sentence_n that_o be_v a_o declaration_n that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v already_o sentence_v by_o the_o law_n be_v necessary_a to_o oblige_v any_o to_o the_o
still_o maintain_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o parish_n church_n 8._o whether_o he_o put_v the_o case_n to_o they_o whether_o we_o that_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o be_v schismatic_n if_o we_o also_o have_v communion_n with_o other_o who_o they_o prosecute_v 9_o whether_o he_o put_v the_o question_n to_o they_o whether_o we_o be_v lawful_o silence_v and_o if_o not_o whether_o rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la we_o be_v bind_v to_o forbear_v our_o ministry_n 10._o whether_o he_o make_v they_o know_v that_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n as_o well_o as_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v etc._n etc._n unless_o they_o will_v conform_v to_o that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v unlawful_a and_o if_o it_o prove_v so_o whether_o they_o shall_v all_o either_o have_v sin_v or_o be_v silent_a in_o obedience_n 11._o whether_o he_o make_v they_o understand_v how_o many_o thousand_o there_o be_v in_o london_n that_o can_v have_v room_n in_o the_o parish-church_n and_o the_o nonconformist_n church_n set_v together_o but_o live_v like_o atheist_n 12._o whether_o he_o acquaint_v they_o that_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o all_o godly_a dissenter_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o or_o can_v join_v in_o the_o parish_n way_n of_o liturgick_a worship_n must_v till_o their_o judgement_n change_n give_v over_o all_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o be_v forsake_v of_o all_o teacher_n 13._o whether_o he_o acquaint_v they_o how_o loud_o a_o call_v we_o have_v to_o preach_v in_o london_n first_o by_o the_o plague_n &_o then_o by_o the_o burn_a of_o the_o church_n the_o people_n be_v desert_v by_o the_o parish_n minister_n in_o these_o sad_a extremity_n 14._o whether_o he_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o king_n licence_n and_o our_o be_v accuse_v of_o schism_n even_o when_o license_v 15._o whether_o he_o acquaint_v they_o with_o what_o we_o have_v say_v for_o ourselves_o late_o in_o divers_a book_n or_o they_o judge_v we_o unheard_a 16._o whether_o they_o be_v singular_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o france_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n for_o any_o to_o preach_v or_o public_o worship_n god_n when_o the_o king_n bishop_n and_o law_n forbid_v they_o and_o if_o so_o how_o long_o it_o have_v be_v their_o judgement_n and_o why_o all_o their_o church_n cease_v not_o when_o prohibit_v if_o not_o so_o how_o to_o know_v that_o our_o silence_v law_n and_o bishop_n must_v be_v obey_v and_o not_o they_o there_o be_v no_o understanding_n their_o answer_n till_o we_o know_v how_o the_o case_n be_v state_v §_o 2._o mr._n clodes_fw-la letter_n be_v moderate_a and_o it_o be_v like_a they_o take_v the_o case_n to_o be_v about_o proper_a separation_n and_o so_o say_v no_o more_o in_o the_o main_a than_o some_o nonconformist_n have_v say_v against_o the_o brownist_n but_o the_o dr._n have_v deal_v too_o unmerciful_o with_o mr._n le_fw-fr moine_n in_o publish_v his_o epistle_n when_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o know_v how_o few_o if_o any_o will_v believe_v his_o story_n but_o take_v it_o for_o a_o confirmation_n how_o incredible_a our_o accuser_n be_v i_o mean_v his_o story_n that_o five_a year_n ago_o he_o hear_v one_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a nonconformist_n preach_v in_o a_o place_n where_o be_v three_o man_n and_o three_o or_o fourscore_o woman_n he_o have_v choose_v a_o text_n about_o the_o build_n up_o the_o ruin_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o for_o explication_n cite_v plinny_a and_o vitruvius_n a_o hundred_o time_n etc._n etc._n i_o think_v i_o shall_v never_o speak_v with_o the_o person_n that_o will_v believe_v he_o sure_o i_o be_o london_n know_v that_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v the_o most_o averse_a to_o such_o kind_n of_o preach_v and_o i_o know_v not_o one_o of_o they_o that_o i_o can_v say_v ever_o read_v a_o quarter_n of_o vitruvius_n i_o confess_v i_o never_o read_v a_o leaf_n of_o he_o this_o monsieur_n will_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o yet_o the_o name_n of_o the_o man_n that_o if_o live_v he_o may_v be_v call_v to_o account_v but_o i_o doubt_v he_o fall_v into_o some_o tabernacle_n of_o which_o many_o be_v erect_v in_o place_n of_o the_o burn_a church_n and_o perhaps_o hear_v the_o conformist_n who_o have_v occasion_n to_o talk_v of_o architecture_n but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o either_o conformist_n or_o nonconformist_n will_v expose_v himself_o to_o common_a scorn_n by_o a_o hundred_o or_o twenty_o such_o citation_n §_o 3._o and_o his_o description_n of_o the_o man_n horrible_a impudence_n to_o excommunicate_v without_o mercy_n the_o church_n etc._n etc._n imagine_v that_o they_o be_v the_o only_a man_n in_o england_n nay_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v predestimate_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o pronounce_v they_o intolerable_a show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o nor_o any_o company_n that_o be_v know_v to_o we_o neither_o our_o separatist_n here_o nor_o anabaptist_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o the_o very_a quaker_n hold_v any_o such_o thing_n §_o 4._o and_o though_o he_o say_v he_o be_v not_o at_o all_o edify_v by_o the_o nonconformist_n preach_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o no_o other_o be_v nor_o that_o none_o be_v edify_v in_o england_n or_o scotland_n while_o public_a preacher_n go_v the_o nonconformist_n way_n §_o 5._o but_o because_o the_o doctor_n choose_v this_o way_n i_o will_v imitate_v he_o though_o with_o the_o apology_n that_o st._n paul_n glory_v and_o give_v he_o notice_n of_o some_o epistle_n of_o man_n that_o judge_v otherwise_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n chap._n fourteen_o epistle_n or_o testimony_n compare_v with_o the_o doctor_n and_o note_n on_o mr._n joseph_n glanvile_n book_n call_v the_o zealous_a impartial_a protestant_n with_o a_o letter_n of_o he_o to_o the_o author_n heretofore_o and_o a_o digression_n of_o doctor_n l._n moulin_n §_o 1._o in_o general_n he_o that_o will_v read_v the_o live_v of_o many_o of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n hildersham_n dod_n and_o many_o such_o and_o bishop_n hall_n character_n of_o dr._n reynolds_n and_o the_o late_o publish_v life_n of_o mr._n joseph_n allen_n john_n janeway_n dr._n winter_n mr._n macham_n mr._n wadsworth_n mr._n stubbs_n etc._n etc._n will_v see_v better_a what_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o than_o by_o our_o three_o french_a epistle_n yea_o thuanus_n give_v a_o just_a character_n of_o many_o abroad_o that_o be_v of_o their_o mind_n and_o john_n fox_n one_o of_o they_o of_o more_o §_o 2._o and_o to_o our_o three_o frenchman_n i_o will_v when_o it_o will_v be_v of_o more_o use_n than_o seem_a vanity_n return_v you_o four_o frenchman_n letter_n to_o myself_o mr._n gache_n mr._n amyrald_n mr._n le_fw-fr blank_n and_o mr._n testard_n and_o if_o you_o will_v some_o german_n too_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n of_o a_o quite_o differ_v sense_n of_o we_o nonconformist_n but_o mr._n gach_v be_v already_o in_o print_n by_o the_o duke_n of_o lauderdales_n mean_n 1660._o and_o join_v with_o one_o of_o mr._n l'angles_n i_o leave_v the_o reader_n that_o desire_v to_o see_v both_o §_o 3._o but_o because_o mr._n jos_n glanvile_n be_v one_o of_o themselves_o here_o though_o a_o origenist_n a_o most_o triumphant_a conformist_n and_o not_o the_o gentle_a contemner_n of_o nonconformist_n and_o famous_a for_o his_o great_a wit_n i_o will_v repay_v the_o dr._n with_o the_o annex_v one_o among_o many_o since_o of_o his_o letter_n to_o myself_o which_o yet_o indeed_o i_o do_v not_o chief_o to_o balance_v the_o drs._n but_o to_o help_v the_o reader_n to_o understand_v mr._n glanvile_n and_o his_o posthumou_n book_n which_o i_o think_v not_o meet_v to_o pass_v by_o without_o some_o animadversion_n though_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o hope_v that_o die_a so_o soon_o after_o it_o and_o his_o preferment_n the_o experience_n of_o the_o vanity_n of_o a_o flatter_a world_n may_v help_v to_o save_v he_o from_o impenitence_n as_o i_o have_v read_v in_o divers_a credible_a writer_n it_o be_v with_o dr._n matthew_n sutliffe_n that_o on_o his_o deathbed_n he_o repent_v that_o he_o have_v write_v so_o much_o against_o the_o reformer_n call_v puritan_n i_o perceive_v dr._n stillingfleet_n marvel_v that_o my_o own_o expectation_n of_o approach_a death_n do_v not_o hinder_v i_o from_o write_v what_o i_o do_v for_o the_o nonconformist_n whereas_o the_o truth_n be_v have_v not_o pain_n and_o weakness_n keep_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n as_o in_o the_o continual_a prospect_n of_o the_o grave_a and_o the_o next_o life_n i_o have_v never_o be_v like_o to_o have_v be_v so_o much_o against_o conformity_n and_o the_o present_a discipline_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v their_o want_n of_o discipline_n as_o i_o have_v be_v for_o the_o world_n may_v have_v more_o flatter_v i_o and_o bias_v my_o judgement_n
and_o my_o conscience_n may_v have_v be_v bold_a and_o less_o fearful_a of_o sin_n and_o though_o i_o love_v not_o to_o displease_v they_o i_o must_v say_v this_o great_a truth_n that_o i_o have_v never_o be_v like_o to_o have_v live_v in_o so_o convince_a sensible_a experience_n of_o the_o great_a difference_n of_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o conformist_n from_o the_o most_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n as_o to_o the_o seriousness_n of_o their_o christian_a faith_n and_o hope_v and_o practice_n their_o victory_n over_o the_o flesh_n and_o world_n etc._n etc._n i_o mean_v both_o in_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n of_o my_o acquaintance_n o_o how_o great_a a_o difference_n have_v i_o find_v from_o my_o youth_n to_o this_o day_n though_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o very_o many_o of_o the_o passive_a conformable_a minister_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o imposer_n have_v be_v and_o be_v worthy_a pious_a man_n and_o such_o as_o will_v not_o persuade_v their_o hearer_n that_o the_o jesuit_n first_o bring_v in_o spiritual_a prayer_n and_o i_o have_v the_o great_a blessing_n of_o my_o education_n near_o some_o such_o in_o three_o or_o four_o neighbour_n parish_n §_o 4._o it_o grieve_v i_o to_o hear_v of_o mr._n glanvile_n death_n for_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o more_o than_o ordinary_a ingeny_n and_o he_o be_v about_o a_o collection_n of_o history_n of_o apparition_n which_o be_v a_o work_n of_o great_a use_n against_o our_o sadducee_n and_o to_o establish_v doubter_n and_o the_o best_a man_n faith_n have_v need_n of_o all_o the_o help_n from_o sense_n that_o we_o can_v get_v and_o i_o fear_v lest_o that_o work_n have_v perish_v with_o he_o but_o i_o glad_o hear_v that_o by_o the_o care_n of_o dr._n h._n more_n that_o worthy_a faithful_a man_n of_o peace_n who_o never_o study_v preferment_n it_o be_v both_o preserve_v and_o augment_v and_o as_o for_o his_o origenisme_n as_o i_o like_v it_o not_o so_o i_o confess_v in_o matter_n of_o that_o nature_n i_o can_v better_o bear_v with_o the_o venturousness_n of_o dissenter_n than_o hereticator_n can_v do_v but_o when_o i_o see_v this_o rag_n call_v a_o letter_n leave_v behind_o he_o my_o grief_n for_o he_o be_v double_v and_o i_o see_v what_o cause_n we_o have_v all_o to_o fear_v the_o snare_n of_o a_o flatter_a world_n and_o what_o cause_n to_o pray_v for_o divine_a preservation_n and_o for_o a_o unbiased_a mind_n and_o a_o humble_a sense_n of_o our_o own_o frailty_n that_o we_o may_v neither_o overvalue_v prosperity_n nor_o our_o own_o understanding_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o he_o that_o have_v write_v the_o vanity_n of_o dogmatize_v can_v so_o soon_o have_v come_v to_o persuade_v man_n in_o power_n that_o dissent_v from_o our_o church_n dogmatize_v and_o impose_v word_n form_n and_o ceremony_n be_v worthy_a of_o so_o severe_a a_o prosecution_n of_o we_o as_o he_o describe_v and_o that_o all_o their_o danger_n be_v from_o the_o forbear_n such_o prosecution_n of_o we_o and_o that_o though_o for_o their_o own_o end_n he_o can_v abate_v we_o some_o little_a matter_n the_o only_a way_n to_o settle_a peace_n be_v vigorous_o to_o execute_v the_o law_n against_o we_o he_o that_o can_v think_v the_o silence_v and_o imprison_v of_o about_o 2000_o such_o minister_n be_v the_o way_n to_o bring_v this_o land_n to_o concord_n have_v sure_a very_o hard_a thought_n of_o they_o in_o comparison_n of_o conformist_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o little_a his_o judgement_n against_o such_o shall_v weigh_v with_o other_o who_o be_v so_o late_o change_v from_o himself_o i_o will_v give_v you_o here_o one_o of_o several_a letter_n which_o i_o have_v from_o he_o and_o leave_v you_o to_o judge_v whether_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v much_o wise_a at_o last_v than_o when_o he_o write_v this_o or_o whether_o his_o character_n of_o i_o agree_v with_o his_o motion_n to_o silence_n and_o ruin_v all_o such_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o own_v his_o monstrous_a praise_n that_o i_o fear_v i_o offend_v he_o with_o sharp_o rebuke_v he_o for_o they_o but_o lest_o his_o wit_n and_o virulence_n here_o do_v harm_n i_o give_v it_o you_o to_o show_v the_o unconstancy_n of_o his_o judgement_n or_o if_o he_o will_v have_v except_v i_o from_o his_o severity_n i_o must_v profess_v that_o i_o believe_v the_o most_o of_o the_o nonconformable_a minister_n of_o my_o acquaintance_n be_v better_a man_n than_o myself_o and_o therefore_o his_o excessive_a praise_n of_o i_o be_v the_o condemnation_n and_o shame_n of_o his_o persecute_v counsel_n §_o 5._o as_o to_o his_o praise_n of_o the_o bishop_n write_n against_o popery_n i_o have_v rather_o magnify_v than_o obscure_a their_o desert_n but_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o old_a one_o who_o write_v to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o new_a one_o who_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o obey_v he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la catholicae_fw-la be_v of_o one_o mind_n because_o both_o be_v call_v protestant_n and_o that_o such_o as_o bishop_n bramhall_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o defender_n of_o grotius_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o bishop_n usher_n bishop_n morton_z bishop_n downame_n etc._n etc._n nor_o that_o grotius_n who_o describe_v a_o papist_n to_o be_v one_o that_o flatter_v pope_n as_o if_o all_o be_v right_o which_o they_o say_v and_o do_v do_v disclaim_v popery_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o the_o old_a church_n of_o england_n do_v two_o man_n may_v cry_v down_o popery_n while_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o papist_n or_o near_a one_o in_o the_o other_o sense_n as_o to_o the_o folly_n of_o call_v that_o popery_n which_o be_v not_o i_o have_v say_v more_o against_o it_o in_o my_o cath._n theology_n than_o he_o have_v do_v and_o as_o to_o his_o excuse_n of_o a_o ignorant_a vicious_a sort_n of_o minister_n because_o no_o better_o will_v take_v small_a live_n it_o be_v not_o true_a the_o silence_a nonconformist_n will_v have_v be_v glad_a of_o they_o or_o to_o have_v preach_v there_o for_o nothing_o the_o tolerate_n of_o ignorant_a scandalous_a man_n be_v more_o excusable_a if_o better_a be_v not_o shut_v out_o that_o will_v have_v take_v such_o place_n but_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o faction_n and_o prosperity_n they_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o ignorant_a and_o vicious_a than_o the_o able_a and_o most_o laborious_a nonconformist_n bishop_n morley_n tell_v i_o when_o he_o forbid_v i_o to_o preach_v that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o a_o place_n to_o have_v none_o than_o to_o have_v i_o when_o i_o ask_v he_o whether_o i_o may_v not_o be_v suffer_v in_o some_o place_n which_o no_o one_o else_o will_v take_v most_o of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n be_v suffer_v by_o connivance_n in_o small_a obscure_a place_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a reason_n why_o they_o set_v not_o up_o other_o meeting_n which_o dr._n stillingfleet_n think_v they_o avoid_v as_o unlawful_a because_o forbid_v §_o 6._o and_o as_o to_o his_o excuse_n by_o blame_v ill_a patron_n i_o will_v know_v then_o by_o what_o true_a obligation_n all_o man_n in_o england_n be_v bind_v to_o commit_v the_o pastoral_n conduct_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o such_o man_n only_o as_o our_o english_a patron_n choose_v §_o 7._o and_o when_o he_o so_o blame_v the_o tepidity_n and_o irreligiousness_n of_o the_o member_n of_o their_o own_o church_n i_o will_v know_v 1._o whether_o all_o man_n that_o be_v more_o serious_o religious_a must_v be_v forsake_v by_o we_o and_o ruin_v by_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o mind_n and_o form_n 2._o and_o whether_o the_o number_n of_o the_o irreligious_a that_o be_v for_o their_o way_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o religious_a that_o be_v against_o it_o shall_v not_o rather_o breed_v some_o suspicion_n in_o they_o than_o engage_v they_o to_o ruin_v so_o many_o such_o man_n §_o 8._o and_o when_o page_n 3._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o sword_n be_v their_o church_n strength_n and_o government_n and_o how_o contemptible_a word_n paper_n argument_n and_o excommunication_n be_v without_o force_n do_v he_o not_o shame_v their_o whole_a cause_n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o government_n which_o the_o church_n use_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n which_o they_o desire_v and_o that_o their_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o they_o talk_v so_o much_o for_o seem_v to_o themselves_o a_o dead_a and_o uneffectual_a thing_n while_o we_o nonconformist_n desire_v no_o coercive_a power_n but_o to_o guide_v consenter_n §_o 9_o as_o to_o his_o project_n to_o save_v religion_n under_o a_o papist_n king_n if_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n may_v but_o choose_v the_o bishop_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o other_o m●●●_n consideration_n but_o